Selected quad for the lemma: saint_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
saint_n church_n paul_n timothy_n 1,351 5 10.3835 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A06346 A treatie of the churche conteining a true discourse, to knowe the true church by, and to discerne it from the Romish church, and all other false assemblies, or counterfet congregations / vvritten by M. Bertrande de Loque ... ; and faithfully translated out of French into English, by T.VV. Loque, Bertrand de.; T. W. 1581 (1581) STC 16812; ESTC S123131 175,246 422

There are 42 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o first_o place_n have_v a_o excellent_a gift_n and_o singular_a grace_n to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n 11.4_o 1._o cor._n 11.4_o also_o they_o be_v such_o as_o be_v endue_v etc._n 1._o cor._n 14.1_o etc._n etc._n with_o great_a wisdom_n and_o readiness_n well_o to_o provide_v for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o speak_v proper_o they_o be_v as_o interpreter_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o this_o rank_n or_o order_n be_v comprehend_v the_o prophet_n that_o have_v the_o gift_n to_o understand_v foresee_v &_o reveal_v thing_n to_o come_v 11.28_o act._n 11.28_o such_o a_o one_o be_v agabus_n who_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n foretell_v that_o a_o great_a famine_n shall_v fall_v throughout_o all_o the_o world_n which_o also_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o emperor_n claudius_n caesar_n day_n also_o that_o saint_n paul_n shall_v be_v bind_v at_o jerusalem_n 13.1_o act._n 21.10_o etc._n etc._n act._n 13.1_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v also_o in_o the_o thirteen_o of_o the_o act_n of_o certain_a prophet_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n to_o wit_n barnabas_n and_o simion_n who_o be_v call_v niger_n and_o lucius_n of_o cyrene_n and_o manahen_n which_o have_v be_v bring_v up_o with_o herode_fw-la the_o tetrarch_n and_o saul_n and_o in_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o 21.9_o act._n 21.9_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o phillip_n four_o daughter_n which_o do_v prophesy_v these_o degree_n or_o this_o office_n of_o prophet_n be_v ordain_v by_o god_n to_o endure_v but_o for_o a_o time_n only_o as_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n evangelist_n evangelist_n general_o be_v those_o which_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o a_o evangelist_n that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o preach_v the_o gospel_n sometime_o also_o this_o name_n evangelist_n be_v refer_v to_o those_o four_o who_o have_v write_v the_o story_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v to_o say_v s._n matthew_n s._n mark_v s._n luke_n and_o s._n john_n but_o in_o this_o order_n of_o the_o church_n the_o question_n be_v of_o a_o other_o charge_n or_o office_n these_o man_n of_o who_o we_o speak_v be_v as_o it_o be_v fellow_n helper_n to_o the_o apostle_n who_o they_o do_v follow_v and_o be_v almost_o continual_o in_o company_n with_o and_o their_o office_n come_v somewhat_o nigh_o to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o apostle_n the_o difference_n be_v only_o in_o the_o degree_n of_o dignity_n of_o this_o sort_n be_v silas_n timothy_n and_o such_o like_a in_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o of_o the_o act_n philip_n be_v call_v a_o evangelist_n 21.8_o act._n 21.8_o and_o saint_n paul_n admonish_v timothy_n in_o one_o of_o the_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v unto_o he_o 4.5_o 2._o tim._n 4.5_o to_o continue_v to_o do_v the_o work_n of_o a_o evangelist_n these_o likewise_o have_v their_o time_n and_o be_v no_o more_o in_o use_n at_o this_o present_a pastor_n be_v they_o pastor_n pastor_n that_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o some_o certain_a flock_n and_o of_o some_o certain_a church_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v the_o same_o preach_v the_o gospel_n administer_a the_o sacrament_n and_o exercise_v discipline_n in_o those_o church_n this_o degree_n and_o office_n must_v have_v his_o course_n and_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n even_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n doctor_n doctor_n doctor_n be_v they_o which_o the_o church_n in_o old_a time_n call_v catechiser_n that_o be_v to_o say_v instructor_n or_o teacher_n who_o charge_n and_o office_n be_v plain_o and_o simple_o to_o expound_v the_o scripture_n that_o man_n may_v have_v the_o right_a sense_n and_o understanding_n thereof_o and_o namely_o to_o teach_v the_o catechumini_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v those_o that_o be_v yet_o to_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o point_n and_o principle_n of_o christian_a religion_n of_o this_o sort_n be_v the_o doctor_n and_o teacher_n of_o our_o age_n which_o teach_v youth_n in_o school_n expound_v unto_o they_o the_o scripture_n and_o their_o office_n consist_v herein_o careful_o to_o provide_v that_o sound_a doctrine_n may_v be_v keep_v &_o publish_v to_o the_o end_n that_o pure_a religion_n may_v continue_v and_o remain_v in_o the_o church_n some_o suppose_v that_o the_o office_n of_o pastor_n &_o doctor_n be_v all_o one_o as_o chrysostome_n and_o s._n augustine_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o they_o be_v two_o distinct_a office_n which_o man_n may_v not_o confound_v and_o mingle_v together_o for_o albeit_o that_o this_o be_v the_o charge_n and_o office_n of_o all_o pastor_n to_o teach_v yet_o they_o go_v somewhat_o further_o than_o the_o doctor_n do_v for_o first_o and_o foremost_a they_o preach_v and_o exhort_v apply_v the_o doctrine_n to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n next_o they_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n and_o in_o the_o three_o place_n they_o have_v the_o charge_n government_n and_o execution_n of_o the_o discipline_n to_o which_o matter_n the_o doctor_n charge_n reach_v not_o they_o be_v only_o ordain_v to_o expound_v the_o scripture_n to_o the_o end_n that_o pure_a and_o sound_a doctrine_n may_v always_o be_v preserve_v &_o maintain_v in_o the_o church_n and_o indeed_o such_o a_o one_o may_v be_v very_o apt_a to_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o the_o doctor_n as_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n to_o preach_v &_o such_o a_o one_o on_o the_o other_o side_n may_v very_o well_o have_v the_o gift_n to_o preach_v as_o shall_v not_o at_o any_o hand_n be_v meet_v or_o fit_a to_o exercise_v the_o charge_n and_o office_n of_o the_o doctor_n although_o that_o sometime_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v the_o pastor_n may_v also_o well_o be_v the_o doctor_n but_o yet_o this_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v that_o they_o be_v diverse_a and_o several_a charge_n or_o office_n and_o these_o be_v the_o five_o degree_n or_o order_n of_o minister_n to_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v commit_v the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n to_o feed_v the_o same_o of_o which_o five_a the_o last_o two_o only_o remain_v to_o be_v always_o use_v in_o his_o church_n saint_n paul_n indeed_o make_v mention_n in_o other_o place_n of_o some_o other_o name_n ancient_n bishop_n and_o elder_n or_o ancient_n as_o of_o bishop_n that_o be_v to_o say_v watchmen_z or_o overwatcher_n and_o of_o elder_n that_o be_v to_o say_v senators_z or_o ancient_n but_o these_o two_o name_n signify_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n as_o the_o apostle_n himself_o declare_v 1.5_o titus_n 1.5_o write_v to_o titus_n for_o mark_v what_o he_o say_v for_o this_o cause_n leave_v i_o thou_o in_o crete_n that_o thou_o shall_v continue_v to_o redress_v the_o thing_n that_o remain_v &_o that_o thou_o shall_v ordain_v elder_n that_o be_v to_o say_v ancient_n in_o every_o city_n as_o i_o appoint_v thou_o and_o afterwards_o he_o add_v a_o excellent_a description_n of_o true_a elder_n and_o ancient_n for_o a_o bishop_n say_v he_o must_v be_v unblameable_a as_o the_o guider_n or_o steward_n of_o god_n own_o house_n and_o so_o forth_o we_o see_v that_o those_o who_o he_o name_v elder_n or_o ancient_n in_o one_o verse_n he_o name_v the_o same_o bishop_n in_o a_o other_o verse_n now_o these_o two_o name_n of_o bishop_n and_o elder_a and_o the_o name_n also_o of_o pastor_n be_v take_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o signify_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o estate_n for_o the_o charge_n and_o office_n of_o the_o pastor_n be_v to_o feed_v the_o sheep_n as_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o the_o four_o and_o thirty_o chapter_n of_o ezechiel_n 34.2_o ezech._n 34.2_o woe_n be_v to_o the_o shepherd_n of_o israel_n which_o feed_v themselves_o shall_v not_o the_o shepherd_n feed_v the_o flock_n but_o the_o bishop_n and_o elder_n be_v call_v to_o the_o same_o thing_n 20.28_o act._n 20.28_o as_o both_o saint_n paul_n and_o saint_n peter_n do_v declare_v saint_n paul_n speak_v thus_o take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a flock_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o bishop_n or_o overseer_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v redeem_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o saint_n peter_n thus_o 5.1.2_o 1._o pet._n 5.1.2_o the_o elder_n which_o be_v amongst_o you_o i_o beseech_v which_o be_o also_o a_o elder_a with_o you_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o you_o care_v for_o it_o not_o by_o constraint_n etc._n etc._n if_o one_o will_v know_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o pastor_n be_v call_v elder_n or_o ancient_n it_o be_v for_o honour_n sake_n not_o as_o though_o when_o in_o old_a time_n they_o choose_v pastor_n they_o be_v all_o ancient_a in_o age_n and_o year_n but_o because_o that_o they_o special_o choose_v they_o from_o amongst_o the_o ancient_n and_o also_o because_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v man_n both_o ripe_a wise_a and_o also_o very_a well_o experience_v old_a age_n
common_o have_v more_o wisdom_n more_o experience_n and_o gravity_n but_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o always_o fall_v out_o that_o white_a or_o grey_a hair_n make_v man_n wise_a yea_o sometime_o we_o shall_v find_v young_a man_n which_o be_v far_o more_o fit_a to_o exercise_v and_o execute_v the_o charge_n and_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n such_o a_o one_o be_v timothy_n than_o those_o that_o be_v of_o great_a year_n it_o be_v true_a that_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o elder_n that_o be_v to_o say_v ancient_n one_o sort_n have_v charge_n and_o office_n to_o minister_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o sacrament_n and_o to_o watch_v over_o the_o discipline_n and_o over_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o other_o be_v join_v unto_o these_o to_o aid_v they_o in_o the_o exercise_v and_o execution_n of_o discipline_n without_o meddle_v any_o whit_n at_o all_o in_o the_o preach_n etc._n etc._n saint_n paul_n set_v out_o this_o order_n when_o he_o say_v to_o timothy_n 5.17_o 1._o tim._n 5.17_o the_o elder_n that_o rule_v well_o be_v worthy_a of_o double_a honour_n special_o they_o which_o labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n for_o in_o that_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o bear_v rule_n he_o give_v we_o well_o to_o understand_v that_o those_o who_o he_o name_v elder_n or_o ancient_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o pastor_n and_o such_o as_o be_v join_v unto_o they_o be_v choose_v to_o have_v charge_n and_o office_n in_o the_o church_n over_o the_o people_n and_o in_o that_o he_o more_o commend_v those_o which_o minister_v the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n than_o the_o other_o he_o evident_o declare_v that_o all_o have_v not_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o charge_n we_o may_v behold_v this_o order_n even_o at_o this_o day_n observe_v in_o the_o reform_a church_n deacon_n deacon_n the_o apostle_n make_v mention_v likewise_o of_o deacon_n which_o word_n be_v take_v in_o holy_a scripture_n in_o two_o sense_n or_o sort_n sometime_o general_o for_o every_o minister_n or_o servitor_n in_o which_o sense_n s._n paul_n call_v the_o magistrate_n the_o deacon_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 15.8_o rom._n 13.4_o ephe._n 3.7_o rom._n 15.8_o the_o servant_n or_o minister_n of_o god_n and_o he_o name_v himself_o the_o deacon_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o also_o he_o call_v jesus_n christ_n the_o deacon_n of_o circumcision_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o minister_n thereof_o wherefore_o be_v so_o take_v and_o refer_v to_o the_o estate_n &_o call_v of_o the_o pastor_n it_o be_v common_o translate_v and_o turn_v by_o this_o word_n minister_n or_o servant_n 3.5_o coloss_n 1.7_o 1._o cor._n 3.5_o as_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n and_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n but_o sometime_o it_o be_v take_v more_o straite_o for_o they_o which_o have_v a_o charge_n and_o office_n to_o gather_v the_o alm_n &_o to_o dispense_v or_o bestow_v they_o among_o the_o poor_a the_o first_o occasion_n that_o be_v give_v to_o choose_v these_o deacons_n in_o the_o church_n be_v this_o because_o the_o apostles_n can_v not_o very_o well_o provide_v for_o our_o furnish_z both_o the_o charge_n of_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o of_o distribute_v the_o good_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v the_o seven_o deacon_n choose_v 6.2_o act_n 6.2_o of_o who_o be_v speak_v act_n 6._o and_o the_o condition_n and_o quality_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o the_o deacon_n that_o man_n will_v choose_v be_v there_o describe_v and_o set_v out_o and_o also_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n etc._n 1._o tim._n 3.8_o etc._n etc._n these_o be_v the_o degree_n of_o the_o church_n or_o ecclesiastical_a order_n which_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o set_v up_o and_o his_o apostle_n after_o he_o establish_v for_o the_o regiment_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n which_o order_n be_v afterwards_o in_o the_o popedom_n by_o little_a and_o little_a not_o only_o corrupt_v but_o utter_o overthrow_v for_o in_o that_o tyrannous_a king_n doom_n after_o that_o corruption_n have_v once_o crafty_o overtake_v or_o steal_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n they_o divise_v and_o forge_v a_o stewardshippe_n dispensation_n and_o bestow_n of_o ecclesiastical_a office_n and_o charge_n which_o be_v altogether_o far_o of_o and_o estrange_v from_o the_o former_a simplicity_n &_o plainness_n whereof_o we_o have_v speak_v wherein_o first_o they_o make_v a_o sacrament_n without_o the_o warrant_n of_o god_n word_n of_o the_o order_n and_o degree_n of_o minister_n afterward_o they_o divise_v a_o certain_a kind_n of_o cream_n or_o oil_n to_o anoint_v they_o as_o they_o say_v but_o indeed_o it_o be_v to_o grease_n or_o smear_v they_o fetch_v that_o though_o a_o false_a zeal_n from_o aaron_n and_o that_o which_o be_v do_v in_o old_a time_n under_o the_o law_n also_o shave_v or_o shear_v special_o of_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o head_n against_o the_o custom_n both_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n 18.18_o act_n 18.18_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o s._n paul_n do_v once_o cause_v his_o head_n to_o be_v shear_v in_o cenchrea_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o it_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o a_o vow_n which_o he_o have_v make_v and_o not_o that_o he_o be_v then_o ordain_v into_o some_o ministry_n but_o a_o great_a while_n after_o his_o call_n and_o in_o that_o he_o cause_v himself_o to_o be_v shear_v he_o do_v it_o not_o for_o any_o other_o purpose_n but_o to_o apply_v himself_o thereby_o to_o the_o jew_n who_o be_v as_o yet_o very_o rude_a and_o not_o well_o instruct_v 9.20_o 1._o cor._n 9.20_o as_o he_o himself_o protest_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n that_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n and_o willing_o he_o become_v under_o the_o law_n although_o he_o be_v deliver_v therefrom_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v win_v the_o jew_n church_n order_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n next_o they_o establish_v or_o make_v seven_o order_n of_o the_o church_n the_o first_o porter_n or_o door_n keeper_n the_o second_o reader_n the_o third_o exorcist_n or_o in_o plain_a english_a conjurer_n who_o as_o they_o feign_v have_v power_n give_v they_o to_o lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o mad_a man_n and_o man_n possess_v with_o devil_n and_o to_o heal_v they_o the_o four_o acoluthe_n that_o be_v to_o say_v follower_n who_o wait_v upon_o the_o bishop_n in_o his_o household_n service_n and_o do_v continual_o accompany_v he_o first_o for_o honour_n sake_n and_o then_o that_o no_o suspicion_n shall_v arise_v of_o they_o the_o fifth_z subdeacons_n or_o underdeacons_n the_o sixth_o deacon_n and_o the_o seven_o priest_n of_o which_o last_o sort_n they_o have_v make_v many_o degree_n whereof_o they_o call_v some_o simple_a or_o single_a chaplain_n other_o curate_n and_o vicar_n other_o bishop_n other_o archbishop_n or_o metropolitanes_n other_o some_o cardinal_n and_o afterward_o they_o come_v to_o the_o four_o patriarch_n and_o last_o to_o the_o pope_n himself_o but_o from_o whence_o come_v this_o goodly_a hierarchy_n or_o order_n of_o priest_n who_o have_v establish_v it_o &_o set_v it_o in_o nature_n or_o be_v do_v jesus_n christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n the_o scripture_n make_v no_o mention_n thereof_o but_o let_v we_o discourse_v a_o little_a upon_o the_o fountain_n and_o beginning_n of_o these_o goodly_a degree_n i_o say_v and_o mean_v only_o of_o those_o which_o they_o contain_v under_o the_o name_n priest_n for_o the_o other_o keep_v not_o the_o place_n of_o true_a bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o these_o will_v seem_v to_o do_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o that_o will_v hear_v speech_n thereof_o 11._o theod._n beza_n lib._n confe_fw-mi punct_a 7._o cap_n 11._o let_v he_o read_v the_o confession_n of_o theodorus_n beza_n as_o concern_v chaplain_n durandus_fw-la in_o his_o book_n call_v rationale_n divinorum_fw-la offic_n allege_v two_o reason_n to_o show_v why_o priest_n be_v so_o call_v the_o one_o be_v because_o the_o king_n of_o france_n in_o time_n heretofore_o when_o they_o go_v to_o war_n be_v wont_a to_o carry_v with_o they_o saint_z martins_z cap_n or_o hood_n which_o they_o keep_v under_o a_o tent_n which_o of_o the_o cap_n keep_v in_o it_o be_v name_v capella_n that_o be_v chapel_n and_o the_o clerk_n or_o priest_n that_o have_v the_o keep_n of_o this_o chapel_n be_v call_v chaplain_n and_o afterwards_o in_o continuance_n of_o time_n this_o name_n be_v in_o some_o country_n give_v general_o to_o all_o priest_n and_o these_o little_a cabbine_n or_o corner_n or_o rather_o high_a place_n which_o be_v in_o the_o popish_a temple_n wherein_o the_o chaplain_n say_v their_o mass_n be_v call_v chapel_n the_o other_o reason_n
or_o assembly_n 2_o sometime_o it_o be_v put_v for_o the_o assembly_n of_o citizen_n and_o burgess_n of_o a_o town_n in_o which_o meeting_n they_o entreat_v of_o the_o common_a and_o ordinary_a affair_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n and_o so_o do_v saint_n luke_n use_v it_o 19.32.39_o act._n 19.32.39_o act_n 19.32.39_o 3_o it_o be_v also_o take_v for_o the_o place_n whether_o the_o assembly_n be_v call_v together_o as_o judeth_n 6._o 6.16_o judeth_n 6.16_o verse_n 16._o and_o they_o call_v together_o all_o ancient_n of_o the_o city_n and_o all_o their_o youth_n run_v together_o to_o the_o church_n or_o assembly_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o place_n of_o the_o congregation_n or_o assembly_n 4_o also_o for_o the_o senate_n or_o consistory_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o the_o pastor_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v indeed_o the_o conductour_n and_o guider_n thereof_o 19.17_o matt._n 19.17_o as_o when_o jesus_n christ_n say_v tell_v the_o church_n matth._n chrysostom_n hom._n 62._o upon_o matth._n that_o be_v to_o say_v even_o as_o chrysostome_n also_o expound_v it_o the_o pastor_n leader_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n according_a whereunto_o we_o see_v that_o saint_n john_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o consistory_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o which_o it_o be_v sometime_o determine_v to_o thrust_v out_o of_o the_o synagogue_n every_o one_o that_o will_v confess_v jesus_n christ_n 9.22_o joh._n 9.22_o he_o say_v general_o that_o the_o jew_n make_v this_o decree_n although_o it_o be_v indeed_o the_o consistory_n only_o 5_o but_o in_o the_o question_n or_o matter_n of_o christian_a religion_n it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o company_n and_o assembly_n of_o faithful_a people_n which_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o true_a &_o pure_a religion_n of_o god_n of_o this_o church_n speak_v s._n paul_n when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o pastor_n thereof_o take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o 20.28_o act._n 20.28_o and_o to_o all_o the_o flock_n whereof_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o bishop_n or_o overseer_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n but_o here_o we_o must_v observe_v certain_a distinction_n for_o even_o in_o this_o signification_n the_o church_n be_v common_o distinguish_v into_o three_o sort_n first_o it_o be_v call_v triumphant_a or_o else_o militant_a the_o church_n triumphant_a be_v the_o company_n of_o bless_a spirit_n who_o have_v get_v victory_n through_o jesus_n christ_n against_o their_o enemy_n the_o devil_n the_o world_n the_o flesh_n sin_n death_n and_o hell_n triumph_n at_o this_o present_a on_o high_a in_o heaven_n praise_v god_n and_o celebrate_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n with_o all_o joyfulness_n we_o have_v a_o goodly_a description_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o revelation_n 7.9.10_o reu._n 7.9.10_o cap._n 7.9.10_o the_o church_n militant_a be_v the_o assembly_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a people_n who_o as_o yet_o on_o earth_n fight_v under_o the_o banner_n or_o standard_n of_o jesus_n christ_n their_o head_n against_o the_o foresay_a enemy_n who_o armour_n or_o weapon_n be_v set_v out_o by_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o ephesian_n etc._n ephes_n 6.13.14_o etc._n etc._n chap._n 6._o for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o lord_n will_v that_o so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v to_o walk_v here_o below_o we_o shall_v be_v without_o affliction_n but_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o be_v continual_o in_o the_o battle_n and_o always_o trouble_v and_o torment_v through_o the_o malice_n of_o man_n yea_o so_o much_o the_o more_o by_o how_o much_o we_o shall_v earnest_o endeavour_v to_o serve_v he_o in_o all_o godliness_n and_o holiness_n 14.22_o act._n 14.22_o this_o matter_n also_o be_v already_o conclude_v that_o by_o many_o tribulation_n we_o must_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n whereunto_o do_v appertain_v also_o 3.12_o joh._n 15.20.16.2_o 2._o tim._n 3.12_o the_o sentence_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o s._n paul_n joh._n 15.20_o joh._n 16.2_o 2._o tim._n 3.12_o but_o hereafter_o we_o will_v speak_v more_o large_o of_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o church_n the_o second_o distinction_n be_v that_z the_o church_n be_v call_v either_o catholic_a that_o be_v to_o say_v universal_a or_o general_a be_v disperse_v throughout_o the_o world_n and_o comprehend_v universal_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o elect_a people_n of_o god_n or_o else_o particular_a which_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o universal_a for_o we_o use_v to_o call_v they_o particular_a church_n or_o congregation_n which_o be_v limit_v within_o a_o certain_a number_n and_o enclose_v in_o certain_a place_n be_v as_o it_o be_v say_v before_o part_n and_o member_n of_o the_o universal_a such_o in_o former_a time_n be_v the_o church_n of_o corinthus_n rome_n ephesus_n &_o such_o be_v at_o this_o day_n the_o church_n of_o france_n germany_n england_n switzerland_n and_o other_o place_n of_o all_o which_o together_o consist_v the_o universal_a which_o notwithstanding_o be_v but_o one_o as_o anon_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o three_o distinction_n be_v that_o the_o church_n be_v sometime_o say_v to_o be_v invisible_a and_o sometime_o visible_a the_o invisible_a church_n be_v streit_o and_o narrow_o consider_v and_o be_v the_o very_a same_o which_o before_o we_o call_v catholic_a or_o universal_a comprehend_v only_o the_o faithful_a and_o elect_a in_o which_o number_n they_o also_o be_v to_o be_v account_v that_o be_v already_o dead_a the_o visible_a church_n be_v consider_v more_o large_o and_o comprehend_v all_o they_o which_o be_v call_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v of_o christ_n flock_n 64._o august_n in_o psal_n 64._o s._n augustine_n use_v this_o distinction_n in_o his_o writing_n for_o write_v upon_o the_o 64._o psalm_n he_o say_v that_o the_o church_n which_o be_v signify_v by_o jerusalem_n take_v beginning_n from_o abel_n and_o babylon_n from_o cain_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o in_o his_o book_n of_o baptism_n against_o the_o donatist_n chap._n 16._o 1.6_o august_n li._n 1._o count_n donatist_n cap._n 1.6_o take_v the_o church_n in_o a_o more_o general_a signification_n he_o say_v that_o the_o same_o which_o beget_v engender_v and_o bring_v forth_o able_a enoch_n noah_n abraham_n and_o the_o prophet_n do_v also_o begette_v engender_v and_o bring_v forth_o cain_n ishmael_n dathan_n and_o other_o such_o like_a but_o we_o must_v more_o narrow_o and_o deep_o search_v this_o matter_n &_o declare_v what_o it_o be_v which_o do_v proper_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n as_o well_o catholic_a and_o invisible_a as_o to_o other_o which_o i_o say_v be_v visible_a but_o first_o of_o the_o catholic_a and_o invisible_a church_n chap._n ii_o of_o the_o catholic_a and_o invisible_a church_n which_o indeed_o be_v but_o one_o albeit_o it_o have_v many_o particular_a part_n and_o member_n by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v before_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o gather_v and_o make_v a_o good_a and_o certain_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o first_o we_o say_v that_o the_o catholic_a and_o invisible_a church_n be_v the_o company_n of_o all_o faithful_a people_n scatter_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n who_o god_n have_v choose_v to_o everlasting_a life_n with_o this_o definition_n agree_v that_o which_o may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o that_o which_o saint_n paul_n say_v to_o the_o corinthian_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o company_n of_o all_o those_o 1.2_o 1._o cor._n 1.2_o that_o be_v sanctify_v through_o jesus_n christ_n and_o call_v to_o be_v saint_n do_v call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o every_o place_n the_o church_n than_o be_v not_o a_o house_n of_o wood_n or_o of_o stone_n build_v by_o man_n hand_n but_o the_o congregation_n commonalty_n and_o fellowship_n of_o all_o those_o which_o follow_v the_o truth_n of_o faith_n which_o matter_n also_o we_o may_v confirm_v by_o these_o reason_n follow_v 9.14_o gal._n 1.13_o act._n 9.14_o first_o s._n paul_n confess_v that_o he_o persecute_v the_o church_n of_o god_n &_o ananias_n say_v that_o he_o have_v authority_n from_o the_o high_a priest_n to_o bind_v all_o those_o that_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v to_o say_v christian_n here_o we_o see_v that_o saint_n paul_n call_v those_o the_o church_n who_o ananias_n name_v christian_n or_o such_o as_o do_v call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n 12.27_o ephe._n 1.23_o 1._o cor._n 12.27_o secondarilie_o the_o church_n be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o company_n of_o faithful_a people_n be_v also_o call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o the_o company_n of_o the_o faithful_a 10.16_o joh._n 10.16_o thirdlie_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o call_v the_o church_n a_o sheepefolde_a whereunto_o sheep_n appertein_a and_o
belong_v but_o by_o sheep_n be_v mean_v the_o elect_v 25.32.33_o matt._n 25.32.33_o as_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o be_v say_v math._n 25._o the_o church_n than_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o sheepfold_a or_o congregation_n of_o the_o elect_a fourthlie_o the_o ancient_a writer_n have_v so_o declare_v it_o and_o set_v it_o out_o for_o behold_v how_o saint_n augustine_n have_v speak_v thereof_o 122._o august_n in_o psal_n 122._o all_o faithful_a christian_n say_v he_o be_v the_o church_n and_o chrysostome_n the_o church_n say_v he_o consist_v not_o in_o wall_n but_o in_o the_o multitude_n of_o faithful_a people_n stroma_fw-la homel_n 20._o the_o expul_n ipsius_fw-la lib._n 7._o de_fw-la stroma_fw-la clemens_n alexandrinus_n say_v also_o i_o call_v the_o church_n not_o the_o place_n or_o the_o temple_n but_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o elect_a this_o church_n be_v call_v catholic_a or_o universal_a for_o three_o reason_n first_o in_o consideration_n of_o the_o place_n for_o it_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o one_o certain_a place_n as_o city_n province_n or_o kingdom_n but_o be_v disperse_v and_o scatter_v abroad_o throughout_o all_o the_o world_n even_o as_o jesus_n christ_n have_v say_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v all_o power_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n and_o as_o the_o second_o psalm_n show_v that_o all_o nation_n and_o all_o the_o end_n and_o coast_n of_o the_o earth_n 28.18_o math._n 28.18_o be_v by_o the_o father_n appoint_v to_o his_o son_n for_o his_o inheritance_n and_o therefore_o also_o do_v jesus_n christ_n send_v forth_o his_o disciple_n through_o out_o all_o the_o world_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o to_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n wherefore_o donatus_n err_v 2.8_o psal_n 2.8_o 28.19_o matt._n 28.19_o when_o he_o go_v about_o to_o tie_v the_o church_n to_o a_o certain_a corner_n of_o africa_n only_o the_o romish_a catholic_n also_o do_v at_o this_o day_n abuse_v themselves_o when_o they_o endeavour_v to_o tie_v it_o to_o rome_n alone_o for_o though_o it_o be_v so_o that_z the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n whereof_o we_o will_v speak_v in_o a_o whole_a &_o plain_a chapter_n afterward_o yet_o it_o can_v not_o be_v but_o a_o particular_a church_n &_o at_o no_o hand_n the_o universal_a church_n whereof_o we_o speak_v they_o also_o be_v likewise_o deceive_v who_o think_v to_o chase_v and_o banish_v this_o church_n out_o of_o the_o world_n for_o see_v that_o it_o be_v universal_a it_o shall_v never_o want_v place_n but_o it_o shall_v always_o be_v gather_v together_o &_o receive_v in_o some_o quarter_n or_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n secondlie_o it_o be_v call_v catholic_a in_o consideration_n of_o the_o person_n for_o it_o receive_v and_o contain_v all_o the_o faithful_a of_o what_o estate_n sex_n or_o condition_n soever_o they_o be_v as_o s._n paul_n show_v when_o he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v neither_o jew_n nor_o greek_a 3.11_o galat._n 3.28_o colos_n 3.11_o bond_n nor_o free_a man_n nor_o woman_n but_o that_o all_o be_v one_o in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o in_o the_o apocalypse_n this_o church_n be_v describe_v and_o set_v out_o in_o this_o behalf_n as_o a_o certain_a city_n have_v twelve_o gate_n 21.13_o revelat._n 21.13_o three_o on_o the_o east_n side_n three_o on_o the_o north_n side_n three_o on_o the_o south_n side_n and_o three_o on_o the_o west_n side_n and_o therefore_o the_o jew_n be_v deceive_v when_o they_o suppose_v that_o the_o church_n aught_o to_o be_v restrain_v to_o the_o only_o fleshly_a race_n and_o lineage_n of_o abraham_n thirdlie_o in_o consideration_n of_o the_o time_n for_o it_o shall_v endure_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o world_n not_o as_o some_o do_v imagine_v a_o hundred_o or_o two_o hundred_o year_n a_o thousand_o or_o two_o thousand_o year_n only_o but_o even_o as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n itself_o shall_v last_v as_o we_o will_v declare_v more_o at_o large_a when_o we_o shall_v speak_v of_o the_o perpetuity_n or_o continuance_n of_o the_o church_n furthermore_o we_o hold_v that_o this_o church_n be_v one_o even_o as_o it_o be_v say_v 12.12_o cantic_a 6.8_o john_n 10.16_o 2._o cor._n 11.2_o revel_v 21.9_o 1._o cor._n 12.12_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a dove_n perfect_v and_o the_o only_a daughter_n of_o her_o mother_n one_o sheepefolde_a one_o spouse_n of_o christ_n one_o body_n and_o indeed_o this_o unity_n or_o oneness_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o a_o common_a and_o bodily_a dwell_n together_o nor_o in_o certain_a outward_a ceremony_n but_o in_o a_o certain_a very_o spiritual_a unity_n and_o in_o a_o assure_a consent_n of_o doctrine_n and_o faith_n for_o amongst_o all_o those_o which_o true_o believe_v in_o christ_n there_o be_v one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n one_o hope_n one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o which_o be_v above_o all_o and_o in_o all_o and_o through_o all_o and_o thereupon_o it_o be_v that_o saint_n paul_n say_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n 3.28_o ephe._n 4.4.5_o gal._n 3.28_o that_o we_o be_v all_o one_o in_o jesus_n christ_n all_o the_o particular_a church_n then_o which_o consent_n in_o true_a doctrine_n aught_o to_o be_v hold_v &_o esteem_v for_o one_o only_a church_n see_v that_o the_o church_n be_v but_o one_o whereupon_o saint_n cyprian_n say_v there_o be_v no_o more_o but_o one_o only_a church_n which_o be_v spread_v abroad_o or_o stretch_v out_o far_o and_o wide_a as_o there_o be_v many_o beam_n in_o the_o sun_n praelat_fw-la de_fw-fr simplicit_fw-la praelat_fw-la and_o yet_o the_o light_n thereof_o but_o one_o and_o in_o a_o tree_n there_o be_v many_o branch_n or_o bow_n and_o yet_o but_o one_o body_n which_o be_v stay_v upon_o his_o own_o root_n and_o from_o one_o only_a fountain_n run_v many_o river_n which_o no_o whitt_n at_o all_o hinder_v or_o let_v that_o the_o unity_n or_o oneness_n shall_v not_o abide_v in_o the_o fountain_n now_o hereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o all_o schismatic_n which_o by_o faction_n sect_n partakinge_n do_v break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n do_v sin_n greevous_o 1.13.3.3_o 1._o cor._n 1.13.3.3_o as_o also_o s._n paul_n declare_v the_o same_o write_n unto_o the_o corinthian_n we_o say_v also_o that_o this_o church_n be_v invisible_a and_o that_o there_o be_v none_o but_o god_n alone_o who_o know_v the_o same_o &_o therefore_o jesus_n christ_n say_v 10.14_o john_n 10.14_o that_o he_o know_v his_o sheep_n and_o that_o he_o know_v they_o who_o he_o have_v choose_v and_o saint_n paul_n 13.18_o john_n 13.18_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o know_v those_o which_o be_v he_o and_o as_o concer-cerning_a ourselves_o we_o believe_v it_o as_o we_o protest_v &_o confess_v 2.19_o 2._o tim._n 2.19_o in_o the_o christian_n article_n of_o our_o belief_n when_o that_o by_o outward_a sign_n we_o can_v point_v it_o forth_o or_o mark_v it_o out_o for_o albeit_o we_o do_v not_o many_o time_n see_v &_o behold_v the_o same_o yet_o it_o cease_v not_o for_o all_o that_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v declare_v unto_o elijah_n when_o he_o complain_v that_o he_o be_v alone_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n 11.3.4_o 1._o king_n 19_o 10.18_o rom._n 11.3.4_o no_o no_o say_v the_o lord_n unto_o he_o i_o have_v reserve_v unto_o myself_o seven_o thousand_o man_n which_o have_v not_o bow_v the_o knee_n to_o baal_n but_o let_v we_o mark_v that_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n general_o and_o not_o of_o the_o member_n thereof_o particular_o for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o we_o may_v by_o sign_n and_o outward_a testimony_n profitable_o judge_v of_o election_n even_o as_o man_n judge_v the_o tree_n by_o the_o good_a fruit_n and_o yet_o this_o must_v be_v understand_v singular_o and_o special_o when_o the_o question_n concern_v ourselves_o for_o according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n peter_n 1.10_o 2._o peter_n 1.10_o we_o make_v our_o call_n &_o election_n firm_a &_o sure_a through_o good_a work_n moreover_o this_o church_n contain_v also_o many_o person_n which_o be_v not_o yet_o call_v unto_o the_o visible_a church_n even_o as_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n show_v in_o s._n john_n 10.60_o joh._n 10.60_o when_o he_o say_v other_o sheep_n i_o have_v also_o which_o be_v not_o of_o this_o fold_n they_o also_o must_v i_o bring_v and_o they_o shall_v hear_v my_o voice_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o sheepefolde_a and_o one_o shepherd_n and_o hereof_o we_o have_v a_o example_n in_o saint_n paul_n for_o when_o he_o persecute_v the_o church_n it_o seem_v very_o that_o he_o do_v not_o appertain_v to_o the_o church_n be_v not_o yet_o call_v to_o be_v a_o sheep_n of_o the_o visible_a sheepfolde_n of_o christ_n notwithstanding_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o ananias_n go_v thy_o way_n to_o he_o 15._o act_n 9_o
be_v always_o present_a in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o church_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v the_o same_o what_o have_v he_o to_o do_v for_o a_o vicar_n or_o lieutenant_n and_o as_o concern_v charge_n and_o office_n we_o know_v what_o executor_n he_o have_v establish_v and_o leave_v s._n paul_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n affirm_v etc._n ephes_n 4.11_o etc._n etc._n that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n have_v give_v some_o apostle_n some_o prophet_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n some_o teacher_n to_o who_o he_o have_v give_v in_o charge_n and_o commit_v his_o church_n to_o order_n and_o guide_v the_o same_o this_o be_v not_o speak_v only_o for_o two_o or_o three_o or_o for_o some_o other_o small_a number_n neither_o yet_o for_o one_o age_n but_o for_o all_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n general_o and_o for_o all_o time_n now_o you_o may_v see_v what_o lieutenant_n jesus_n christ_n have_v substitute_v in_o his_o place_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v give_v unto_o peter_n a_o primacy_n to_o be_v pope_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o mere_a lease_n the_o second_o reason_n be_v this_o jesus_n christ_n only_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n 1._o 3.11_o 1._o cor._n 3.11_o corinth_n 3.11_o whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n be_v found_v upon_o jesus_n christ_n and_o at_o no_o hand_n upon_o saint_n peter_n and_o by_o consequent_a that_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o saint_n peter_n touch_v that_o which_o jesus_n christ_n speak_v unto_o peter_n thou_o be_v peter_n 16.18_o matt._n 16.18_o and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n we_o will_v anon_o declare_v the_o true_a and_o natural_a sense_n thereof_o the_o third_o reason_n s._n peter_n charge_n &_o office_n be_v limit_v and_o set_v within_o certain_a bond_n for_o s._n paul_n witness_v of_o himself_o and_o peter_n thus_o 2.7_o galat._n 2.7_o that_o he_o be_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o saint_n peter_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o say_v that_o this_o division_n be_v make_v by_o the_o revelation_n and_o ordinance_n of_o god._n it_o follow_v then_o that_o saint_n peter_n be_v not_o a_o universal_a apostle_n nor_o a_o sovereign_a &_o high_a bishop_n over_o all_o the_o church_n otherwise_o saint_n paul_n shall_v have_v do_v ill_o in_o so_o limit_v &_o hedge_v in_o as_o it_o be_v the_o the_o charge_n and_o office_n of_o his_o apostleship_n yea_o and_o that_o eighteen_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o i_o will_v wish_v the_o romishe_a catholic_n to_o take_v some_o better_a view_n of_o and_o heed_n to_o this_o reason_n for_o if_o their_o pope_n snatch_v and_o take_v unto_o himself_o the_o primacy_n for_o this_o reason_n because_o he_o be_v saint_n peter_n successor_n he_o must_v then_o exercise_v his_o primacy_n or_o popedom_n over_o the_o jew_n and_o preach_v unto_o they_o the_o gospel_n that_o he_o may_v gain_v they_o and_o draw_v they_o to_o jesus_n christ_n leave_v unto_o he_o whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o will_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v call_v the_o successor_n of_o saint_n paul_n primacy_n over_o the_o gentile_n the_o four_o reason_n one_o wife_n have_v but_o only_o one_o husband_n which_o be_v her_o head_n but_o the_o church_n be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n 21.9_o 2._o cor._n 11.2_o ephe._n 5.22_o reve._n 21.9_o 2._o cor._n 11.2_o ephesian_n 5.22_o revelat_fw-la 21.9_o the_o church_n than_o have_v none_o other_o but_o christ_n alone_o for_o her_o husband_n and_o head_n the_o five_o reason_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o saint_n peter_n use_v the_o power_n and_o authority_n which_o jesus_n christ_n give_v he_o for_o otherwise_o he_o shall_v have_v neglect_v his_o charge_n and_o hide_a his_o talon_n in_o the_o ground_n and_o so_o by_o consequent_a have_v disobey_v his_o master_n not_o serve_v he_o pure_o and_o faithful_o but_o so_o it_o be_v he_o never_o usurp_v any_o primacy_n over_o the_o other_o apostle_n or_o over_o the_o church_n for_o he_o make_v himself_o equal_a to_o the_o other_o pastor_n etc._n 1._o peter_n 5.1.21_o etc._n etc._n name_v himself_o a_o pastor_n and_o a_o elder_a with_o they_o and_o he_o have_v say_v also_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a at_o any_o hand_n for_o any_o man_n to_o have_v lordship_n over_o the_o lord_n inheritaunce_n then_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o receive_v not_o any_o primacy_n or_o lordship_n from_o jesus_n christ_n over_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o six_o reason_n 8.14_o act._n 8.14_o saint_n peter_n be_v send_v together_o with_o john_n into_o samaria_n by_o the_o other_o apostle_n now_o if_o he_o have_v be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v have_v rule_n and_o authority_n over_o the_o apostle_n it_o have_v appertein_v unto_o he_o to_o send_v other_o &_o not_o to_o other_o to_o send_v he_o the_o seven_o reason_n if_o saint_n peter_n have_v have_v the_o right_n of_o primacy_n to_o what_o end_n will_v he_o have_v suffer_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v reprove_v by_o s._n paul_n and_o that_o before_o the_o people_n alibi_fw-la in_o sext_n decr_n de_fw-fr con._n cap._n licet_fw-la &_o distinct_a 19_o ca._n si_fw-fr roman_n in_o glossa_fw-la &_o de_fw-la conce_n prae_fw-la tit_n 8._o ca._n pro._n posuit_fw-la &_o alibi_fw-la for_o this_o be_v do_v even_o then_o when_o he_o both_o might_n and_o aught_o to_o have_v show_v his_o authority_n and_o rule_n as_o at_o this_o day_n the_o pope_n who_o say_v that_o he_o be_v above_o right_n neither_o be_v hold_v or_o bind_v by_o law_n that_o he_o may_v prefer_v through_o his_o interpretation_n equity_n unwritten_a before_o law_n write_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o allow_v or_o dissallow_v all_o that_o he_o allow_v or_o disallow_v that_o he_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o any_o censure_n have_v all_o law_n and_o right_n in_o the_o coffer_n of_o his_o breast_n and_o stomach_n now_o saint_n peter_n do_v not_o allege_v any_o whit_n or_o part_n of_o all_o these_o blasphemy_n but_o take_v in_o good_a worth_a saint_n paul_n censure_n and_o reproof_n acknowledge_v himself_o his_o companion_n and_o fellow_n and_o one_o that_o be_v join_v with_o he_o &_o the_o other_o apostle_n in_o felloweshippe_n of_o office_n yea_o inferior_a to_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o subject_n to_o the_o admonition_n and_o censure_n of_o his_o brethren_n the_o eight_o reason_n so_o it_o be_v that_o among_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o time_n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v bodily_a conversant_a with_o they_o etc._n luk._n 22.24_o etc._n etc._n there_o be_v a_o controversy_n which_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v esteem_v or_o judge_v the_o great_a but_o christ_n labour_v to_o bring_v they_o to_o humility_n and_o to_o take_v from_o amongst_o they_o all_o ambition_n say_v thus_o the_o king_n of_o the_o nation_n bear_v rule_v and_o they_o which_o exercise_n authority_n over_o they_o be_v call_v gracious_a lord_n but_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o but_o let_v the_o great_a among_o you_o be_v as_o the_o least_o and_o the_o chief_a as_o he_o that_o serve_v and_o afterwards_o he_o set_v himself_o forth_o for_o a_o example_n for_o who_o be_v great_a he_o that_o sit_v at_o table_n or_o he_o that_o serve_v be_v not_o he_o that_o sit_v at_o the_o table_n and_o i_o be_o among_o you_o as_o he_o that_o serve_v and_o you_o be_v they_o which_o have_v continue_v with_o i_o in_o my_o temptation_n last_o he_o conclude_v therefore_o i_o appoint_v unto_o you_o a_o kingdom_n as_o my_o father_n have_v appoint_v to_o i_o these_o be_v our_o principal_a reason_n to_o declare_v that_o saint_n peter_n be_v not_o appoint_v lord_n over_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o have_v no_o more_o authority_n or_o pre-eminence_n in_o it_o than_o the_o other_o apostle_n his_o companion_n and_o fellow_n have_v now_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o contrary_a reason_n which_o the_o romish_a catholic_n make_v the_o first_o be_v this_o 16.18_o matt._n 16.18_o jesus_n christ_n have_v say_v to_o saint_n peter_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n it_o follow_v then_o that_o saint_n peter_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o consequent_a the_o head_n thereof_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o itself_o but_o he_o have_v speak_v plain_o to_o the_o corinthian_n that_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o be_v the_o only_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n 3.11_o 1._o cor._n 3.11_o and_o that_o none_o can_v lay_v any_o other_o than_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v already_o therefore_o he_o affirm_v not_o in_o that_o place_n of_o s._n matthew_n the_o contrary_a to_o this_o and_o mark_v this_o deed_n jesus_n christ_n have_v not_o say_v and_o upon_o thou_o o_o peter_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n but_o &_o upon_o
thing_n we_o can_v after_o any_o sort_n say_v or_o affirm_v of_o rome_n moreover_o if_o we_o must_v respect_v and_o regard_v the_o apostle_n there_o be_v as_o much_o or_o rather_o more_o reason_n to_o make_v s._n paul_n the_o first_o bishop_n or_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o s._n peter_n for_o in_o the_o first_o place_n beside_o that_o he_o be_v not_o in_o any_o thing_n less_o or_o inferior_a to_o the_o most_o excellent_a or_o chief_a apostle_n 11.5_o 2._o cor._n 11.5_o we_o find_v not_o that_o s._n peter_n do_v at_o any_o time_n reprove_v he_o in_o his_o ministry_n 2.11_o gal._n 2.11_o as_o he_o reprove_v or_o blame_v s._n peter_n and_o beside_o we_o have_v a_o certain_a and_o a_o assure_a testimony_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n touch_v s._n paul_n 28.30.31_o act._n 23.11_o act._n 28.30.31_o that_o he_o be_v send_v by_o god_n to_o rome_n there_o to_o bear_v witness_n of_o he_o &_o that_o he_o there_o preach_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n two_o whole_a year_n together_o that_o from_o thence_o he_o write_v diverse_a epistle_n to_o the_o church_n that_o he_o be_v there_o prisoner_n and_o at_o the_o last_o behead_v by_o nero._n and_o as_o touch_v peter_n we_o have_v no_o assure_a testimony_n that_o he_o go_v to_o rome_n or_o that_o he_o tarry_v there_o exercise_v there_o the_o ministry_n if_o they_o will_v reply_v that_o jesus_n christ_n give_v he_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o that_o by_o that_o mean_n he_o be_v prefer_v before_o saint_n paul_n and_o make_v head_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v answer_v that_o heretofore_o which_o we_o mind_n not_o hereto_o repeat_v beside_o though_o it_o be_v so_o that_o s._n peter_n be_v ordain_v to_o bear_v rule_n over_o all_o church_n as_o a_o apostle_n yet_o it_o can_v not_o thereupon_o follow_v that_o his_o successor_n ought_v to_o have_v any_o such_o right_a or_o authority_n as_o he_o because_o they_o which_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n have_v not_o the_o same_o charge_n and_o the_o same_o office_n that_o the_o apostle_n have_v for_o when_o jesus_n christ_n ordain_v his_o twelve_o apostle_n he_o ordain_v they_o for_o a_o time_n only_o and_o after_o they_o he_o have_v not_o substitute_v or_o ordain_v other_o in_o their_o place_n to_o have_v so_o ample_a and_o large_a a_o charge_n as_o they_o be_v likewise_o we_o read_v not_o that_o the_o apostle_n establish_v other_o apostle_n in_o their_o stead_n but_o only_o elder_n and_o ancient_n that_o be_v to_o say_v pastor_n and_o minister_n who_o have_v their_o calling_n charge_n and_o office_n limit_v wherefore_o albeit_o saint_n peter_n may_v well_o be_v a_o universal_a bishop_n yet_o so_o it_o be_v that_o those_o that_o come_v after_o he_o can_v not_o right_o attribute_v unto_o themselves_o such_o a_o office_n but_o to_o conclude_v by_o what_o mark_n can_v the_o pope_n brag_v that_o he_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o peter_n who_o office_n he_o do_v not_o any_o manner_n of_o way_n execute_v and_o who_o he_o follow_v not_o in_o any_o thing_n whatsoever_o chap._n viii_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a and_o catholic_a church_n and_o whether_o we_o do_v well_o to_o separate_v and_o withdraw_v ourselves_o from_o it_o when_o we_o call_v the_o assembly_n of_o papist_n the_o romish_n church_n we_o mean_v not_o that_o we_o hold_v or_o take_v the_o same_o for_o the_o true_a church_n for_o we_o take_v the_o word_n church_n in_o his_o general_a signification_n for_o a_o company_n or_o fellowship_n or_o congregation_n and_o indeed_o we_o hold_v and_o affirm_v that_o among_o the_o papist_n the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o but_o only_o some_o little_a tract_n or_o path_n of_o a_o church_n to_o the_o end_n that_o that_o which_o saint_n paul_n say_v may_v be_v accomplish_v to_o wit_n that_o antechrist_n do_v sit_v as_o god_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n this_o be_v true_a 2.4_o 2._o thess_n 2.4_o much_o less_o can_v we_o say_v that_o the_o assembly_n which_o be_v amongst_o the_o papist_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n which_o point_n we_o prove_v by_o these_o reason_n follow_v the_o first_o reason_n the_o true_a church_n be_v found_v or_o buide_v 2.20_o ephes_n 2.20_o upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v but_o the_o papacy_n or_o popedom_n have_v not_o any_o such_o foundation_n because_o that_o it_o have_v overthrow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n as_o may_v plain_o appear_v by_o the_o examination_n of_o their_o tradition_n the_o popedom_n therefore_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n the_o second_o reason_n in_o the_o true_a and_o catholic_a church_n 3.7.15_o 1._o tim._n 3.7.15_o the_o truth_n shall_v reign_v &_o bear_v sway_n for_o s._n paul_n say_v the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n but_o in_o the_o papacy_n truth_n reign_v not_o but_z on_z the_o contrary_a side_n falsehood_n &_o lie_v as_o appeareth_z by_z the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o mass_n of_o purgatory_n of_o invocation_n or_o prayer_n to_o saint_n of_o idol_n of_o merit_n and_o other_o such_o matter_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o papacy_n or_o popedom_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n the_o three_o reason_n the_o true_a church_n 5.22_o 2._o cor._n 11.2_o ephes_n 5.22_o be_v the_o spouse_n or_o wife_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n content_v herself_o with_o christ_n her_o only_a husband_n even_o as_o a_o honest_a woman_n do_v content_v herself_o with_o her_o only_a husband_n without_o admit_v or_o suffer_v any_o other_o with_o or_o beside_o he_o which_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v not_o because_o she_o receive_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n for_o her_o husband_n and_o join_v he_o together_o with_o jesus_n christ_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n the_o four_o reason_n the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o sheepfold_a of_o jesus_n christ_n sheep_n 10.16_o joh._n 10.16_o but_o the_o popedom_n be_v not_o the_o sheepfold_n of_o christ_n sheep_n for_o it_o hear_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n the_o true_a pastor_n or_o shepherd_n but_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o stranger_n that_o be_v of_o the_o pope_n who_o law_n it_o follow_v and_o keep_v more_o than_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n the_o papacy_n then_o or_o popedom_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n 1.23_o ephes_n 1.23_o the_o five_o reason_n the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n content_v itself_o with_o christ_n the_o only_a head_n thereof_o otherwise_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o monster_n with_o two_o head_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n which_o thing_n the_o romish_a church_n do_v not_o because_o it_o receive_v and_o hold_v the_o pope_n for_o her_o head_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v very_o well_o that_o the_o romishe_a church_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n the_o sixth_o reason_n though_o it_o be_v that_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n yet_o it_o can_v not_o be_v but_o a_o particular_a church_n even_o as_o the_o church_n of_o corinthus_n ephesus_n and_o other_o whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v not_o neither_o can_v be_v the_o catholic_a and_o universal_a church_n the_o seven_o reason_n in_o the_o true_a church_n these_o three_o mark_n be_v find_v without_o fail_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o lawful_a call_n of_o pastor_n the_o pure_a preach_n of_o the_o word_n &_o the_o right_a administration_n of_o sacrament_n but_o in_o the_o romishe_a church_n these_o three_o mark_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v as_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o show_v by_o the_o examination_n that_o a_o man_n may_v make_v thereof_o whereof_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o romishe_a church_n be_v not_o the_o true_a and_o right_a church_n now_o see_v that_o we_o have_v sufficient_o show_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n neither_o yet_o the_o true_a church_n man_n must_v not_o deem_v it_o strange_a that_o we_o can_v not_o agree_v with_o it_o but_o that_o we_o depart_v and_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o it_o and_o that_o in_o so_o do_v we_o ought_v not_o at_o any_o hand_n or_o any_o manner_n of_o way_n to_o be_v hold_v &_o account_v for_o schismatik_n because_o we_o do_v not_o forsake_v the_o ancient_a and_o catholic_a church_n no_o not_o the_o ancient_a roman_a church_n but_o do_v altogether_o agree_v with_o the_o same_o for_o will_v we_o know_v what_o manner_n of_o church_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o ancient_a time_n tertullian_n teach_v it_o we_o heretic_n tertul._n de_fw-fr praescr_n heretic_n when_o he_o speak_v thereof_o after_o this_o manner_n a_o bless_a church_n
hear_v that_o which_o saint_n paul_n say_v that_o it_o appertain_v to_o god_n 3.7_o 1._o cor._n 3.7_o to_o give_v the_o increase_n to_o that_o which_o the_o minister_n plant_v and_o water_n and_o jesus_n 6.44.65_o joh._n 6.44.65_o that_o none_o can_v come_v unto_o he_o except_o his_o father_n draw_v he_o sometime_o also_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o man_n without_o compare_v god_n and_o he_o together_o and_o then_o in_o respect_n that_o god_n use_v his_o ministry_n to_o accomplish_v his_o own_o work_n by_o that_o be_v attribute_v to_o he_o which_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o god_n as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v 3.6_o 1._o cor._n 3.6_o that_o the_o minister_n plant_v and_o build_v church_n 1.23_o 1._o cor._n 3.6_o philemon_n 10._o luk._n 1.16_o joh._n 20.23_o jude_n 1.23_o that_o they_o beget_v man_n and_o win_v they_o to_o god_n that_o they_o turn_v man_n heart_n that_o they_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n that_o they_o save_v all_o this_o must_v be_v understand_v in_o that_o they_o be_v the_o instrument_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n to_o bring_v all_o these_o thing_n to_o pass_v by_o for_o then_o the_o question_n be_v not_o of_o that_o which_o man_n do_v by_o his_o own_o virtue_n and_o power_n but_o of_o that_o which_o god_n work_v by_o the_o hand_n and_o ministry_n of_o man_n wherefore_o god_n be_v always_o the_o efficient_a or_o work_a cause_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o man_n together_o with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o he_o propound_v and_o preach_v unto_o we_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o instrument_n and_o minister_n wherewith_o god_n serve_v himself_o or_o which_o he_o use_v for_o the_o performance_n of_o so_o excellent_a a_o work_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o which_o despise_v and_o reject_v the_o ministry_n which_o god_n have_v ordain_v do_v despise_v and_o reject_v god_n himself_o 10.16_o luk._n 10.16_o for_o this_o cause_n jesus_n christ_n say_v he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v i_o despise_v he_o that_o send_v i_o and_o saint_n paul_n write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n declare_v right_o well_o in_o what_o authority_n reverence_n and_o account_n we_o ought_v to_o have_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n when_o he_o say_v that_o god_n have_v commit_v unto_o the_o pastor_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n 5.18_o 2._o cor._n 5.18_o the_o embassage_n or_o ministry_n of_o reconciliation_n and_o write_v to_o the_o thessalonian_o 2.13_o 1._o thess_n 2.13_o we_o thank_v god_n without_o cease_v that_o when_o you_o receive_v of_o we_o the_o word_n of_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n you_o receive_v it_o not_o as_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o as_o it_o be_v indeed_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o also_o work_v in_o you_o that_o believe_v it_o be_v for_o the_o very_a self_n same_o reason_n that_o speak_v unto_o the_o roman_n of_o the_o word_n preach_v by_o the_o minister_n he_o say_v 1.16_o rom._n 1.16_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n to_o all_o that_o believe_v and_o to_o the_o corinthian_n 1.18_o 1._o cor._n 1.18_o that_o though_o the_o word_n or_o preach_v of_o the_o cross_n be_v to_o they_o that_o perish_v foolishness_n yet_o it_o cease_v not_o to_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o we_o which_o obtain_v salvation_n now_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n be_v so_o call_v by_o saint_n paul_n because_o it_o be_v the_o powerful_a and_o effectual_a instrument_n which_o god_n use_v to_o save_v us._n and_o for_o this_o cause_n it_o be_v call_v also_o by_o isaiah_n the_o arm_n of_o the_o lord_n 53.1_o isai_n 53.1_o in_o sum_n we_o ought_v diligent_o to_o take_v heed_n to_o 3.9_o 1._o cor._n 3.9_o and_o to_o regard_v that_o which_o s._n paul_n faith_n unto_o the_o corinthian_n we_o together_o be_v god_n laborer_n you_o be_v god_n husbandry_n and_o god_n building_n in_o so_o much_o that_o we_o always_o set_v before_o we_o two_o thing_n when_o the_o question_n or_o dispute_n shall_v be_v touch_v the_o ministry_n that_o be_v to_o say_v on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o minister_n that_o shall_v speak_v and_o preach_v unto_o we_o and_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o we_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n god_n who_o work_v inward_o in_o our_o heart_n and_o indeed_o accomplish_v and_o fulfil_v in_o we_o that_o which_o the_o minister_n speak_v unto_o we_o and_o do_v outward_o represent_v and_o show_v unto_o us._n as_o we_o have_v a_o notable_a example_n thereof_o in_o the_o sixteenth_o of_o the_o act_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o as_o saint_n paul_n preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o lydia_n 16.14_o act._n 16.14_o a_o seller_n of_o purple_a god_n be_v he_o alone_o which_o open_v her_o heart_n that_o she_o attain_v unto_o and_o understand_v the_o thing_n which_o s._n paul_n speak_v chap._n xi_o of_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v see_v &_o hear_v heretofore_o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o company_n of_o faithful_a people_n which_o be_v also_o call_v the_o communion_n or_o fellowship_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o holy_a one_o the_o church_n therefore_o be_v holy_a because_o it_o be_v compact_v or_o make_v of_o saint_n or_o holy_a one_o but_o here_o we_o must_v mark_v four_o point_n the_o first_o be_v how_o and_o in_o what_o sense_n we_o be_v call_v saint_n or_o holy_a one_o it_o be_v not_o as_o the_o idiot_n or_o ignorant_a people_n under_o stand_v it_o who_o by_o saint_n mean_v none_o other_o but_o those_o which_o be_v already_o dead_a &_o so_o canonize_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o else_o the_o priest_n and_o friar_n clad_v in_o white_a or_o black_a &_o gird_v with_o a_o rope_n but_o by_o saint_n we_o understande_v they_o who_o be_v elect_v from_o before_o all_o everlastingness_n of_o time_n be_v in_o their_o time_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o time_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v they_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v sanctify_v by_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n and_o clothe_v with_o true_a faith_n now_o such_o be_v all_o true_a christian_n and_o faithful_a people_n the_o second_o that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o that_o we_o be_v saint_n or_o holy_a one_o 8.21_o psa_fw-la 51.5_o &c_n &c_n gen._n 8.21_o neither_o of_o our_o own_o nature_n for_o by_o our_o own_o nature_n all_o we_o be_v altogether_o corrupt_v etc._n rom._n 8.6_o etc._n etc._n and_o the_o child_n of_o wrath_n but_o we_o be_v saint_n because_o jesus_n christ_n have_v sanctify_v we_o 17.19_o ephe._n 2.3_o john_n 17.19_o as_o he_o himself_o say_v in_o saint_n john_n for_o their_o sake_n i_o sanctify_v myself_o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v sanctify_v through_o the_o truth_n now_o he_o have_v sanctify_v we_o by_o the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n which_o by_o reason_n of_o this_o effect_n be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n 1.4_o rom._n 1.4_o and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o s._n paul_n mean_v when_o he_o say_v 5.25.26.27_o ephe._n 5.25.26.27_o that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v redeem_v his_o church_n and_o have_v sanctify_v it_o that_o he_o may_v make_v it_o unto_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n now_o this_o sanctification_n or_o holiness_n be_v bring_v to_o pass_v first_o by_o the_o imputation_n or_o account_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n unto_o we_o 1._o 1._o cor._n 1._o for_o he_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o father_n to_o be_v our_o sanctification_n second_o by_o the_o purge_n or_o cleanse_v of_o our_o filthiness_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o saint_n paul_n declarerh_n it_o in_o the_o corinthian_n when_o he_o say_v be_v not_o deceive_v neither_o fornicator_n 6.9.10.11_o 1._o cor._n 6.9.10.11_o nor_o idolater_n nor_o adulterer_n nor_o wantoness_n nor_o bugger_n nor_o thief_n nor_o covetous_a nor_o drunkard_n nor_o railer_n nor_o extortioner_n shall_v inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o such_o be_v some_o of_o you_o but_o you_o be_v wash_v but_o you_o be_v sanctify_v but_o you_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o god_n and_o indeed_o saint_n paul_n in_o a_o other_o place_n show_v that_o filthiness_n be_v oppose_v and_o set_v against_o sanctification_n and_o holiness_n when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o roman_n 6.19_o rom._n 6.19_o as_o you_o have_v give_v your_o member_n servant_n to_o uncleanness_n and_o iniquity_n to_o commit_v iniquity_n so_o now_o give_v your_o member_n servant_n unto_o righteousness_n in_o holiness_n also_o to_o the_o thessalonian_o 4.7_o 1._o thess_n 4.7_o god_n have_v not_o call_v we_o unto_o uncleanness_n but_o unto_o holiness_n the_o third_o point_n be_v that_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o church_n
any_o steed_n at_o all_o to_o say_v that_o any_o this_o place_n of_o augustine_n ought_v to_o be_v understod_a of_o outward_a and_o indifferent_a thing_n for_o saint_n augustine_n dispute_v there_o of_o a_o point_n of_o doctrine_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o opinion_n of_o saint_n cyprian_n &_o of_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n touch_v rebaptisation_n or_o baptise_v again_o now_o then_o in_o so_o great_a diversity_n &_o gainsay_v one_o of_o a_o other_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v to_o which_o council_n shall_v we_o give_v great_a faith_n and_o credit_n for_o this_o we_o perceive_v clear_o and_o plain_o that_o they_o thus_o cross_v and_o contrary_v one_o a_o other_o do_v not_o all_o consent_n and_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o truth_n &_o that_o therefore_o we_o must_v of_o necessity_n conclude_v that_o some_o of_o they_o have_v err_v and_o that_o by_o their_o false_a and_o erroneous_a determination_n they_o have_v degenerate_v and_o go_v astray_o from_o the_o right_a way_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n certain_o it_o be_v very_o meet_a and_o requisite_a synod_n a_o admonition_n touch_v counsel_n and_o synod_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v wise_a and_o very_a well_o advise_v when_o the_o question_n be_v either_o to_o set_v out_o or_o to_o receive_v that_o which_o shall_v be_v determine_v by_o counsel_n and_o synod_n for_o it_o be_v altogether_o manifest_a and_o plain_a that_o counsel_n and_o synod_n may_v be_v deceive_v and_o therefore_o as_o touch_v their_o decree_n and_o determination_n this_o be_v that_o we_o have_v to_o say_v that_o we_o must_v bring_v the_o weight_n of_o they_o and_o make_v it_o subject_v to_o the_o balance_n that_o be_v to_o say_v we_o must_v try_v and_o examine_v they_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v indeed_o the_o balance_n 1.8_o gala._n 1.8_o whereunto_o not_o only_a man_n be_v subject_a but_o also_o the_o angel_n as_o saint_n paul_n teach_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o wherefore_o whatsoever_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o they_o conformable_a and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o proportion_n of_o faith_n and_o agree_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o ought_v to_o receive_v the_o same_o without_o any_o scruple_n or_o doubt_n but_o if_o they_o propound_v unto_o we_o and_o set_v out_o thing_n contrary_a to_o that_o we_o ought_v and_o we_o may_v without_o any_o difficulty_n or_o danger_n reject_v and_o refuse_v they_o as_o suspect_v and_o dangerous_a doctrine_n for_o as_o saint_n jerome_n have_v sometime_o say_v jerem._n hierom._n in_o 9_o cap._n jerem._n we_o ought_v not_o to_o follow_v the_o error_n of_o our_o father_n and_o predecessor_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n who_o teach_v us._n whereupon_o also_o gerson_n 5_o gerson_n par_fw-fr 1._o the_o exam_n doctrine_n abbas_n panormita_n epist_n de_fw-fr electi_fw-la one_o &_o elect_v potest_fw-la cap._n 5_o and_o panormitan_n have_v conclude_v that_o in_o matter_n which_o concern_v faith_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o bishop_n may_v not_o determine_v and_o decree_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o if_o a_o general_a council_n shall_v come_v so_o far_o as_o to_o decline_v and_o go_v aside_o either_o through_o malice_n or_o through_o ignorance_n of_o the_o gospel_n a_o simple_a man_n allege_v in_o that_o council_n the_o word_n of_o god_n ought_v rather_o to_o be_v hear_v and_o yield_v unto_o then_o all_o they_o let_v we_o enter_v or_o come_v now_o to_o our_o advice_n and_o let_v we_o bring_v forth_o and_o allege_v our_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v the_o first_o reason_n be_v this_o that_o great_a company_n of_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n which_o be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n with_o who_o god_n have_v make_v a_o covenant_n and_o have_v make_v they_o bind_v unto_o he_o by_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o benefit_n and_o good_a turn_n and_o have_v give_v unto_o they_o sacrament_n and_o ceremony_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v visible_a sign_n of_o his_o grace_n that_o great_a company_n i_o say_v be_v a_o very_a goodly_a &_o a_o very_a excellent_a church_n but_o they_o be_v vile_o deceive_v and_o err_v foul_o when_o forsake_v the_o commandment_n they_o make_v unto_o themselves_o a_o golden_a calf_n offer_v and_o give_v unto_o it_o that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a to_o god_n alone_o yea_o and_o aaron_n himself_o the_o high_a priest_n do_v not_o so_o constant_o and_o bold_o withstand_v they_o as_o he_o ought_v but_o rather_o consent_v thereto_o indeed_o wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v and_o be_v deceive_v the_o second_o reason_n the_o church_n in_o old_a time_n do_v offer_v and_o give_v the_o holy_a supper_n to_o little_a infant_n stay_v and_o ground_v themselves_o upon_o the_o place_n of_o saint_n john_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n 9.53_o john_n 9.53_o &_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o and_o this_o custom_n be_v in_o use_n in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n innocent_a saint_n cyprian_n and_o saint_n augustine_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o their_o write_n but_o now_o this_o be_v not_o any_o more_o use_v for_o child_n which_o can_v not_o prove_v and_o examine_v themselves_o be_v not_o at_o this_o day_n receive_v to_o the_o partake_n of_o the_o sacrament_n wherefore_o the_o church_n in_o old_a time_n have_v err_v or_o else_o it_o err_v now_o but_o if_o we_o will_v answer_v that_o the_o church_n have_v power_n and_o authority_n to_o change_v such_o custom_n and_o manner_n i_o reply_v to_o the_o contrary_a for_o now_o the_o question_n be_v not_o here_o of_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a in_o the_o use_n but_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v always_o constant_a and_o not_o subject_a to_o any_o change_n as_o to_o say_v that_o to_o day_n it_o have_v one_o sense_n and_o understanding_n and_o to_o morrow_n a_o other_o wherefore_o if_o the_o place_n of_o s._n john_n command_v to_o give_v the_o supper_n to_o little_a infant_n of_o necessity_n as_o the_o forename_a ancient_a father_n have_v understand_v and_o expound_v the_o same_o the_o church_n have_v do_v well_o in_o time_n heretofore_o to_o follow_v that_o commandment_n and_o at_o this_o time_n it_o err_v in_o not_o follow_v it_o any_o long_o or_o else_o if_o the_o say_v place_n be_v not_o to_o be_v refer_v proper_o unto_o the_o holy_a supper_n neither_o command_v to_o distribute_v and_o give_v the_o sacrament_n to_o infant_n but_o it_o be_v of_o necessity_n require_v that_o he_o to_o who_o we_o must_v administer_v the_o say_a sacrament_n 1.2_o 1._o cor._n 1.2_o have_v knowledge_n to_o try_v &_o examine_v himself_o according_a to_o s._n paul_n doctrine_n as_o in_o deed_n this_o be_v the_o pure_a and_o only_a truth_n it_o follow_v then_o that_o the_o church_n have_v in_o former_a time_n err_v to_o admit_v little_a infant_n to_o the_o holy_a supper_n and_o that_o at_o this_o day_n it_o do_v well_o to_o practice_v the_o contrary_n the_o three_o reason_n if_o the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v saint_n paul_n have_v without_o cause_n fear_v 11.28_o 1._o cor._n 11.28_o lest_o the_o corinthian_n who_o he_o call_v a_o church_n shall_v through_o the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o serpent_n be_v corrupt_v 11.3_o 2._o cor._n 11.3_o and_o turn_v away_o from_o the_o simplicity_n that_o be_v in_o christ._n and_o indeed_o in_o vain_a shall_v he_o have_v call_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o corinthian_n and_o galathian_o 1.2_o gala._n 1.2_o church_n which_o yet_o notwithstanding_o err_v in_o doctrine_n in_o faith_n in_o manner_n and_o in_o life_n but_o saint_n paul_n do_v nothing_o of_o all_o this_o without_o cause_n or_o in_o vain_a otherwise_o saint_n paul_n himself_o shall_v have_v be_v deceive_v wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v the_o four_o reason_n those_o that_o can_v not_o err_v have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n but_o the_o church_n have_v need_n of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n for_o jesus_n christ_n give_v it_o a_o form_n of_o prayer_n have_v command_v it_o to_o demand_v &_o ask_v of_o god_n forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n 6.12_o matt._n 6.12_o wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v the_o five_o reason_n the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o old_a time_n in_o jerusalem_n be_v oftentimes_o reprove_v of_o error_n by_o the_o prophet_n which_o thing_n declare_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o in_o this_o world_n without_o will_n and_o deed_n to_o err_v but_o to_o the_o end_n i_o may_v not_o be_v overlong_o in_o recite_v by_o piecemeal_o and_o as_o it_o be_v one_o by_o one_o all_o the_o sentence_n which_o make_v mention_v of_o the_o fall_v of_o the_o church_n let_v man_n read_v that_o which_o be_v write_v thereof_o in_o these_o place_n touch_v
what_o be_v we_o poor_a worm_n of_o the_o earth_n dwell_v here_o in_o filthiness_n and_o corruption_n and_o infect_v with_o so_o many_o spot_v as_o nothing_o more_o than_o we_o yea_o we_o be_v abominable_a sinner_n who_o have_v right_o deserve_v not_o only_o by_o tyrant_n in_o this_o life_n to_o be_v persecute_v in_o our_o good_n and_o body_n but_o also_o to_o be_v for_o ever_o lose_v drown_v and_o swallow_v up_o in_o the_o devil_n possession_n in_o hell_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o god_n have_v vouchsave_v we_o worthy_a of_o this_o honour_n to_o use_v our_o life_n and_o our_o death_n to_o withstand_v his_o enemy_n and_o to_o maintain_v and_o advance_v his_o glory_n by_o our_o martyrdom_n if_o we_o have_v but_o so_o much_o as_o one_o drop_n of_o good_a judgement_n and_o be_v push_v on_o forward_o with_o as_o little_a right_a zeal_n as_o may_v be_v to_o serve_v our_o god_n shall_v not_o this_o kindle_v and_o inflame_v we_o in_o a_o singular_a and_o wonderful_a desire_n to_o employ_v &_o bestow_v ourselves_o in_o the_o maintenance_n of_o his_o honour_n whatsoever_o assault_n shall_v be_v set_v before_o we_o and_o to_o keep_v ourselves_o strong_a &_o steadfast_a in_o the_o midst_n of_o persecution_n that_o we_o may_v suffer_v &_o abide_v the_o same_o courageous_o and_o cheerful_o for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n the_o nine_o point_n what_o be_v the_o end_n which_o god_n respect_v and_o regard_v in_o the_o persecution_n and_o affliction_n of_o his_o church_n and_o of_o his_o faithful_a people_n whereof_o we_o will_v mark_v and_o put_v down_o eight_o first_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n may_v be_v advance_v for_o it_o be_v say_v 16.4_o prou._n 16.4_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v all_o thing_n for_o his_o own_o sake_n and_o glory_n yea_o even_o the_o wicked_a for_o the_o day_n of_o evil_a when_o the_o disciple_n ask_v jesus_n christ_n touch_v he_o that_o be_v bear_v blind_a say_v master_n 9.2.3_o john_n 9.2.3_o who_o do_v sin_n this_o man_n or_o his_o parent_n that_o he_o be_v bear_v blind_a jesus_n answer_v neither_o have_v this_o man_n sin_v nor_o his_o parent_n but_o it_o be_v to_o this_o end_n that_o the_o work_v of_o god_n shall_v be_v manifest_v in_o he_o and_o show_v on_o he_o jesus_n christ_n mean_v to_o teach_v thereby_o that_o god_n do_v not_o always_o afflict_v man_n for_o their_o sin_n but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o his_o glory_n may_v shine_v forth_o and_o be_v make_v manifest_a by_o the_o succour_n and_o comfort_v which_o he_o send_v they_o and_o this_o be_v the_o same_o which_o he_o speak_v also_o touch_v lazarus_n 11.4_o john_n 11.4_o this_o sickness_n be_v not_o unto_o death_n but_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v thereby_o and_o thereunto_o have_v saint_n paul_n respect_n and_o regard_n when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o corinthian_n we_o be_v afflict_v on_o every_o side_n 4.8.9.15_o 2._o cor._n 4.8.9.15_o yet_o be_v we_o not_o in_o distress_n in_o poverty_n but_o not_o overcome_v of_o poverty_n we_o be_v persecute_v but_o yet_o not_o forsake_v we_o be_v cast_v down_o but_o yet_o we_o perish_v not_o for_o all_o thing_n be_v for_o your_o sake_n that_o most_o plenteous_a grace_n by_o the_o thanks_n give_v of_o many_o may_v redound_v to_o the_o glory_n and_o praise_n of_o god_n 1.7_o hebr._n 12.8_o zacha._n 13.9_o jam._n 1.2.3_o 1._o pet._n 1.7_o 2_o that_o the_o faithful_a may_v be_v discern_v from_o the_o unfaythfull_a and_o hypocrite_n as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n very_o well_o declare_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n temptation_n and_o affliction_n be_v call_v in_o holy_a scripture_n the_o trial_n of_o faith_n 3_o that_o we_o may_v be_v humble_v and_o keep_v in_o our_o duty_n the_o more_o earnest_o to_o serve_v god._n wherefore_o david_n say_v 119.67.71_o psa_fw-la 119.67.71_o before_o i_o be_v afflict_v i_o go_v astray_o but_o now_o i_o keep_v thy_o word_n it_o be_v good_a for_o i_o that_o i_o have_v be_v afflict_v that_o i_o may_v learn_v thy_o statute_n and_o saint_n paul_n 12.7_o 2._o cor._n 12.7_o lest_o i_o shall_v be_v exalt_v out_o of_o measure_n through_o the_o abundance_n of_o revelation_n there_o be_v give_v unto_o i_o a_o prick_n in_o the_o flesh_n the_o messenger_n of_o satan_n to_o buffet_v i_o 4_o that_o our_o old_a man_n may_v be_v more_o and_o more_o beat_v down_o conquer_v and_o mortify_v for_o affliction_n serve_v to_o correct_v and_o amend_v the_o remnaunte_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v as_o yet_o in_o this_o our_o flesh_n wherefore_o saint_n paul_n say_v 4.16_o 2._o cor._n 4.16_o therefore_o we_o faint_a not_o by_o reason_n of_o our_o affliction_n say_v he_o but_o though_o our_o outward_a man_n perish_v or_o be_v corrupt_v yet_o the_o inward_a man_n be_v renew_a daily_a 5_o that_o we_o may_v be_v provoke_v to_o pray_v unto_o god_n and_o prick_v on_o forward_o to_o return_v unto_o he_o for_o in_o prosperity_n we_o easy_o forget_v he_o 6.1_o psal_n 78.34_o hosea_n 5.15_o hosea_n 6.1_o when_o god_n slay_v they_o say_v david_n than_o they_o seek_v he_o and_o they_o return_v and_o fight_v god_n early_o and_o in_o hosea_n in_o their_o affliction_n they_o will_v seek_v i_o diligent_o say_v come_v and_o let_v we_o return_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o have_v spoil_v but_o he_o will_v heal_v we_o he_o have_v wound_v we_o but_o he_o will_v bind_v we_o up_o we_o know_v that_o man_n natural_o when_o they_o be_v at_o their_o ease_n and_o quiet_a sleep_v therein_o and_o be_v as_o it_o be_v drunken_a therewith_o insomuch_o that_o they_o seldom_o or_o never_o acknowledge_v the_o author_n of_o their_o prosperity_n but_o be_v once_o afflict_v with_o sickness_n or_o else_o toss_v upon_o the_o sea_n with_o tempest_n &_o storm_n or_o else_o on_o the_o land_n assault_v by_o thief_n &_o robber_n or_o else_o stray_v &_o wander_v through_o wilderness_n &_o unknown_a country_n or_o else_o be_v persecute_v with_o some_o other_o of_o god_n rod_n then_o be_v it_o that_o every_o one_o run_v and_o have_v his_o recourse_n to_o god_n whereunto_o nature_n itself_o thrust_v they_o forward_o they_o not_o go_v thither_o to_o a_o right_a end_n but_o this_o be_v also_o to_o make_v they_o so_o much_o the_o more_o without_o excuse_n and_o touch_v the_o elect_a the_o lord_n not_o mind_v to_o destroy_v they_o awaken_v they_o by_o this_o mean_a and_o way_n wherefore_o let_v we_o mark_v that_o the_o lord_n lay_v upon_o we_o many_o necessity_n misery_n and_o affliction_n the_o deliverance_n from_o which_o he_o have_v reserve_v to_o himself_o place_v we_o therein_o as_o it_o be_v in_o examination_n and_o upon_o the_o rack_n and_o torture_v to_o make_v we_o to_o confess_v that_o which_o our_o unthankfulness_n &_o malice_n will_v choke_v up_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o all_o our_o good_a joy_n and_o prosperity_n come_v from_o he_o above_o to_o who_o fatherly_a goodness_n it_o be_v meet_v for_o we_o to_o resort_v by_o our_o supplication_n and_o prayer_n 6_o that_o the_o gospel_n may_v be_v advance_v for_o it_o flourish_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o persecution_n as_o we_o have_v before_o show_v in_o the_o seven_o point_n to_o be_v mark_v in_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n speak_v of_o a_o little_a before_o in_o this_o very_a chapter_n 7_o that_o our_o patience_n and_o hope_n may_v be_v exercise_v 5_o rom._n 5._o 3.4_o 5_o wherefore_o saint_n paul_n say_v to_o the_o roman_n we_o rejoice_v in_o tribulation_n know_v that_o tribulation_n bring_v forth_o patience_n and_o patience_n experience_n and_o experience_n hope_v and_o hope_n make_v not_o ashamed_a 8_o that_o we_o may_v so_o much_o the_o more_o willing_o despise_v the_o world_n &_o that_o we_o leave_v without_o grief_n this_o life_n altogether_o full_a of_o misery_n may_v aspire_v upwarde_o to_o heaven_n where_o our_o city_n be_v 4.27.18_o 2._o cor._n 4.27.18_o to_o the_o place_n of_o our_o perpetual_a abode_n so_o say_v saint_n paul_n our_o l●ght_a affliction_n which_o be_v but_o for_o a_o moment_n cause_v unto_o we_o a_o far_o most_o excellent_a and_o eternal_a weight_n of_o glory_n while_o we_o look_v not_o on_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v but_o on_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o see_v for_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v be_v temporal_a but_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o see_v be_v eternal_a the_o ten_o point_n what_o issue_n or_o end_v the_o affliction_n have_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o faithful_a one_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o turn_v &_o work_v to_o their_o good_a joy_n and_o salvation_n as_o appear_v by_o these_o place_n follow_v it_o be_v good_a for_o i_o that_o i_o have_v be_v afflict_v 1.12_o psal_n 119.71_o james._n 1.12_o that_o i_o may_v learn_v thy_o statute_n bless_a be_v
a_o treaty_n of_o the_o church_n contain_v a_o true_a discourse_n to_o know_v the_o true_a church_n by_o and_o to_o discern_v it_o from_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o all_o other_o false_a assembly_n or_o counterfeit_a congregation_n write_a by_o m._n bertrande_fw-fr de_fw-fr loque_n of_o dolphinee_n and_o dedicate_v unto_o my_o lord_n the_o viscount_n of_o turenne_n and_o faithful_o translate_v out_o of_o french_a into_o english_a by_o t._n w._n imprint_v at_o london_n for_o richard_n langton_n dwell_v in_o swythins_n lane_n and_o there_o they_o be_v to_o be_v sell_v 1581._o the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n contain_v in_o this_o present_a treatise_n touch_v the_o diverse_a signification_n and_o chapter_n 1_v take_n of_o this_o word_n church_n and_o how_o the_o church_n be_v common_o distinguish_v pag._n 1._o of_o the_o catholic_a and_o universal_a church_n which_o chapter_n 2_o be_v one_o although_o there_o be_v diverse_a particular_n thereof_o pag._n 7._o of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o of_o the_o true_a mark_n chapter_n 3_o thereof_o pag._n 14._o whether_o the_o true_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v chapter_n 4_o to_o be_v find_v amongst_o the_o romish_a catholic_n pag._n 19_o of_o the_o call_n &_o succession_n of_o pastor_n pag._n 24._o chapter_n 5_o that_o the_o church_n have_v always_o be_v from_o the_o chapter_n 6_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n be_v and_o shall_v be_v unto_o the_o end_n thereof_o but_o yet_o the_o church_n must_v not_o be_v regard_v or_o acknowledge_v for_o the_o great_a number_n sake_n pag._n 55._o that_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o chapter_n 7_o church_n and_o not_o saint_n peter_n neither_o any_o pope_n pag._n 68_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a and_o chapter_n 8_o catholic_a church_n and_o whether_o we_o do_v well_o to_o withdraw_v and_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o it_o pag._n 102_o chapter_n 9_o touch_v the_o degree_n of_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n where_o also_o speech_n be_v have_v of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o pope_n clergy_n and_o of_o the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o true_a pastor_n pag._n 128._o chapter_n 10_o whether_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v always_o necessary_a in_o the_o church_n and_o how_o much_o man_n may_v attribute_v or_o give_v thereto_o pa._n 160._o chapter_n 11_o of_o the_o sanctity_n or_o holiness_n of_o the_o church_n page_n 184._o chapter_n 12_o whether_o the_o church_n may_v err_v pag._n 197._o chapter_n 13_o whether_o the_o church_n be_v above_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o the_o holy_a scripture_n depend_v on_o the_o judgement_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 213._o chapter_n 14_o of_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n pag_n 234._o chapter_n 15_o whether_o it_o helong_v to_o the_o church_n to_o make_v law_n and_o if_o she_o make_v some_o how_o far_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o obey_v she_o pag._n 258_o chapter_n 16_o concern_v the_o affliction_n and_o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 274._o ¶_o to_o the_o most_o noble_a lord_n my_o lord_n henry_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr tour_n viscount_n of_o turenne_n county_n of_o monfort_n baron_n of_o mongacon_n oliergues_n bonsolz_n faith_n seruissac_n croc_n etc._n etc._n captain_n of_o five_o hundred_o man_n at_o arm_n of_o the_o king_n army_n my_o lord_n 30._o lactan._n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la vera_fw-la sapient_a cap._n 30._o lactantius_n have_v very_o proper_o and_o fit_o call_v the_o church_n the_o fountain_n of_o truth_n the_o house_n and_o dwell_a place_n of_o faith_n &_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n adjoin_v withal_o that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o which_o enter_v not_o into_o this_o temple_n or_o if_o there_o be_v any_o that_o go_v out_o thereof_o he_o be_v shut_v out_o from_o the_o hope_n of_o life_n and_o from_o eternal_a salvation_n for_o even_o as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o universal_a flood_n none_o can_v be_v save_v which_o be_v out_o of_o noah_n his_o ark_n 23._o genesis_n 7.20_o 23._o so_o without_o the_o church_n there_o be_v neither_o hope_n nor_o faith_n nor_o grace_n nor_o salvation_n which_o thing_n also_o the_o apostle_n saint_n paul_n do_v very_o well_o declare_v and_o mean_v when_o be_v purpose_v to_o excommunicate_v some_o and_o to_o cast_v they_o out_o of_o the_o church_n 20_o 2._o cor._n 5._o 3.5_o 1._o tim._n 1._o 20_o he_o say_v he_o must_v deliver_v they_o unto_o satan_n for_o as_o jesus_n christ_n reign_v in_o the_o church_n so_o satan_n reign_v without_o the_o same_o and_o as_o they_o which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n have_v jesus_n christ_n for_o their_o head_n be_v in_o very_o good_a state_n &_o bless_a so_o they_o which_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n have_v the_o devil_n for_o thejr_a head_n can_v but_o be_v wicked_a and_o accurse_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v both_o in_o isaiah_n &_o in_o joel_n that_o in_o zion_n and_o in_o jerusalem_n there_o shall_v be_v salvation_n 2.32_o isaiah_n 46.13_o joel._n 2.32_o there_o be_v mean_v by_o zion_n and_o jerusalem_n the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o also_o by_o the_o word_n heaven_n there_o be_v mean_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o the_o apocalips_n when_o s._n john_n say_v i_o hear_v a_o great_a &_o loud_a voice_n 12.10_o reve._n 12.10_o say_v now_o be_v salvation_n in_o heaven_n on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o read_v that_o when_o god_n declare_v that_o he_o will_v utter_o root_v out_o some_o from_o the_o heavenly_a life_n he_o denounce_v against_o they_o and_o threaten_v 9_o ezech._n 13._o 9_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v in_o the_o council_n &_o assembly_n of_o his_o people_n neither_o write_v in_o the_o role_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o david_n very_o well_o know_v and_o feel_v this_o when_o sometime_o be_v in_o exile_n all_o grief_n and_o adversity_n be_v unto_o he_o tolerable_a and_o as_o a_o man_n will_v say_v easy_a to_o bear_v except_v this_o that_o he_o be_v deprive_v of_o and_o want_v the_o solemn_a assembly_n wherein_o man_n make_v public_a declaration_n and_o protestation_n of_o god_n religion_n and_o service_n wherefore_o bewail_v his_o condition_n because_o he_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o visible_a church_n he_o be_v also_o shut_v out_o from_o access_n or_o come_n to_o the_o tabernacle_n by_o the_o cruelty_n and_o tyranny_n of_o his_o enemy_n he_o cry_v out_o earnest_o and_o say_v 84.1.2.4.10_o psalm_n 84.1.2.4.10_o o_o lord_n of_o host_n how_o amiable_a be_v thy_o tabernacle_n my_o soul_n long_v yea_o &_o faint_v for_o the_o court_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o my_o heart_n and_o my_o flesh_n leap_v for_o joy_n in_o the_o live_a god_n and_o a_o little_a after_o bless_a be_v they_o which_o dwell_v in_o thy_o house_n they_o will_v ever_o praise_v thou_o for_o a_o day_n in_o thy_o court_n be_v better_o than_o a_o thousand_o other_o where_o i_o have_v rather_o be_v a_o door_n keeper_n in_o the_o house_n of_o my_o god_n then_o to_o dwell_v in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o wicked_a for_o thereby_o he_o have_v declare_v that_o the_o condition_n of_o those_o man_n which_o bestow_v their_o life_n yea_o although_o it_o be_v but_o a_o day_n long_o in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o church_n and_o among_o faithful_a people_n be_v far_o more_o bless_v than_o they_o who_o live_v though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o long_o out_o of_o god_n house_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o those_o out_o of_o who_o company_n their_o religion_n be_v banish_v to_o which_o purpose_n also_o belong_v that_o 27.4_o psalm_n 27.4_o which_o the_o same_o prophet_n sing_v a_o other_o psalm_n one_o thing_n have_v i_o desire_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o i_o will_v require_v even_o that_o i_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n to_o behold_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o visit_v his_o temple_n 106.45_o psal_n 106.45_o and_o again_o when_o he_o say_v remember_v or_o have_v mercy_n on_o i_o o_o lord_n with_o the_o favour_n and_o good_a will_n of_o the_o people_n and_o visit_v i_o with_o thy_o salvation_n that_o i_o may_v see_v the_o good_a thing_n of_o thy_o choose_a once_o &_o rejoice_v in_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o people_n and_o glory_n with_o thy_o inheritance_n and_o for_o this_o very_a cause_n and_o occasion_n 11.24.25_o heb._n 11.24.25_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n commend_v and_o praise_v moses_n when_o he_o say_v that_o by_o faith_n he_o be_v come_v to_o age_n refuse_v to_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o pharaoh_n his_o daughter_n choose_v rather_o to_o suffer_v adversity_n with_o the_o people_n of_o god_n then_o to_o enjoy_v the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n for_o a_o short_a season_n wherefore_o if_o we_o will_v that_o god_n shall_v govern_v we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o the_o end_n to_o make_v we_o enjoy_v and_o possess_v
his_o spiritual_a &_o heavenly_a good_a thing_n which_o he_o gyve_v not_o but_o unto_o his_o child_n alone_o the_o member_n of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n and_o by_o consequent_a if_o we_o will_v be_v save_v and_o make_v bless_v we_o ought_v to_o hold_v and_o keep_v ourselves_o firm_a sure_a and_o well_o stay_v in_o the_o church_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o force_n of_o tyrant_n no_o violence_n of_o storm_n and_o tempest_n no_o persecution_n of_o enemy_n no_o promise_n no_o threaten_n nor_o to_o be_v short_a any_o thing_n else_o which_o may_v turn_v we_o away_o or_o cause_v we_o to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o it_o but_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o we_o see_v what_o controversy_n and_o disputation_n there_o be_v at_o this_o day_n amongst_o man_n touch_v the_o point_n or_o matter_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v true_o which_o lactantius_n say_v to_o wit_n that_o every_o company_n of_o heretic_n suppose_v 10._o lact._n de_fw-fr verae_fw-la sapient_a ca._n 10._o that_o they_o be_v true_a christian_n and_o their_o church_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n as_o we_o know_v that_o parmenianus_n the_o donatist_n say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o church_n but_o amongst_o his_o sort_n and_o company_n insomuch_o that_o sundry_a in_o this_o age_n suffer_v themselves_o too_o drop_n away_o and_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o feign_a name_n and_o visardlyke_a title_n of_o the_o church_n abide_v harden_v in_o their_o superstition_n and_o blind_v in_o their_o error_n make_v not_o account_v 20._o august_n ad_fw-la catecuin_n cap._n 20._o of_o saint_n augustine_n his_o advertisement_n and_o counsel_n who_o speak_v thus_o this_o catholic_a church_n be_v our_o true_a mother_n yea_o she_o be_v our_o faithful_a and_o chaste_a mother_n deck_v within_o with_o the_o dignity_n and_o worthiness_n of_o her_o husband_n and_o not_o colour_v or_o paint_v without_o with_o lie_v and_o falsehood_n and_o afterwards_o he_o add_v let_v we_o look_v well_o to_o ourselves_o that_o the_o strange_a and_o false_a name_n of_o the_o church_n turn_v we_o not_o away_o from_o this_o mother_n of_o we_o and_o that_o the_o outward_a show_n or_o borrow_v bare_a title_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o deceive_v us._n there_o be_v some_o other_o who_o remain_v astonish_v as_o it_o be_v and_o doubtful_a not_o know_v to_o which_o part_n to_o turn_v neither_o on_o which_o side_n to_o set_v themselves_o in_o order_n see_v the_o romishe_a church_n arm_v with_o great_a force_n and_o authority_n maintain_v and_o uphold_v by_o great_a personage_n clothe_v with_o diverse_a ornament_n outward_a apparel_n and_o follow_v of_o the_o great_a number_n on_o the_o otherside_n behold_v the_o reform_a church_n feeble_a and_o weak_a in_o outward_a show_n make_v and_o stand_v for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o small_a and_o base_a according_a to_o the_o world_n simple_a in_o decking_n and_o ceremony_n and_o follow_v of_o very_o few_o people_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v our_o principal_a light_n and_o chief_a guide_n give_v we_o a_o good_a remedy_n and_o aid_v in_o this_o difficulty_n show_v we_o that_o the_o true_a church_n aught_o to_o be_v discern_v from_o the_o false_a by_o her_o own_o right_a and_o true_a mark_n which_o be_v the_o pure_a preach_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o true_a and_o right_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o not_o the_o great_a number_n of_o people_n nor_o pomp_n nor_o outward_a ceremony_n invent_v and_o devise_v by_o man_n themselves_o you_o my_o lord_n have_v sometime_o see_v what_o trouble_n &_o combat_n the_o very_a vizard_n bare_a name_n &_o shine_a show_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v bring_v to_o some_o man_n conscience_n and_o spirit_n and_o that_o not_o only_o amongst_o the_o rude_a and_o ignorant_a sort_n but_o even_o in_o the_o rank_n and_o order_n of_o those_o which_o make_v profession_n and_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o teach_v other_o yea_o so_o far_o it_o have_v carry_v they_o that_o by_o reason_n there_o be_v not_o in_o they_o a_o full_a resoluteness_n they_o know_v not_o of_o what_o company_n they_o shall_v be_v notwithstanding_o as_o touch_v yourself_o after_o that_o god_n have_v honour_v you_o with_o his_o knowledge_n and_o call_v you_o into_o his_o church_n that_o you_o may_v be_v comprehend_v within_o the_o sheepefolde_a of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n have_v almost_o make_v open_a profession_n of_o his_o gospel_n and_o cast_v away_o the_o beast_n mark_v whatsoever_o shake_v and_o stagger_v you_o perceive_v in_o diverse_a other_o you_o notwithstanding_o have_v always_o continue_v through_o god_n grace_n ground_v and_o settle_v yourself_o upon_o his_o assure_a and_o invincible_a word_n and_o in_o deed_n by_o what_o force_n and_o strength_n can_v the_o back_n slydinge_n of_o some_o and_o the_o sophistical_a disputation_n of_o other_o some_o astonishe_v your_o faith_n or_o beat_v down_o your_o constancy_n so_o well_o maintain_v and_o uphold_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n how_o can_v these_o assault_n crack_v your_o courage_n or_o change_n and_o make_v cold_a your_o zeal_n so_o hot_a in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n certain_o this_o be_v a_o great_a matter_n that_o all_o the_o world_n have_v a_o eye_n upon_o you_o wonder_v at_o and_o love_v the_o great_a and_o singular_a affection_n which_o you_o bear_v to_o the_o advauncement_n of_o god_n true_a religion_n and_o service_n but_o the_o question_n be_v now_o to_o continue_v in_o well_o do_v and_o to_o proceed_v daily_o from_o good_a to_o better_v for_o this_o be_v nothing_o to_o begin_v well_o except_o a_o man_n persevere_v and_o continue_v even_o to_o the_o end_n and_o we_o know_v what_o jesus_n christ_n say_v to_o wit_n that_o he_o which_o put_v his_o hand_n to_o the_o plough_n and_o look_v back_o be_v not_o apt_a to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 2.5_o luke_n 9.62_o 2._o tim._n 2.5_o and_o saint_n paul_n if_o any_o man_n say_v he_o strive_v for_o a_o mastery_n he_o be_v not_o crown_v except_o he_o strive_v as_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v there_o be_v some_o which_o say_v that_o this_o be_v enough_o for_o a_o man_n to_o have_v some_o testimony_n in_o his_o conscience_n that_o he_o belong_v to_o god_n albeit_o he_o make_v not_o any_o declaration_n or_o profession_n of_o his_o religion_n but_o by_o the_o testimony_n here_o above_o mark_v and_o put_v down_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o we_o to_o gather_v what_o need_n we_o have_v to_o range_v and_o bring_v ourselves_o into_o the_o true_a church_n that_o we_o may_v therein_o live_v christianlie_a in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n see_v that_o any_o where_o else_o there_o be_v neither_o life_n nor_o light_n and_o also_o what_o assurance_n can_v they_o have_v of_o their_o salvation_n which_o live_v in_o this_o world_n as_o dog_n and_o swine_n follow_v the_o train_n and_o step_n of_o sardanapalus_n or_o of_o epicurus_n to_o eat_v and_o drink_v to_o laugh_v and_o rejoice_v to_o play_v and_o to_o give_v themselves_o to_o pleasure_n without_o think_v any_o whit_n at_o all_o of_o god_n or_o remember_v any_o religion_n wherefore_o my_o lord_n even_o as_o you_o have_v well_o and_o bless_o begin_v have_v have_v right_a knowledge_n to_o discern_v between_o the_o true_a and_o false_a church_n so_o it_o yet_o rest_v that_o you_o persevere_v and_o continue_v yea_o that_o yet_o you_o proceed_v and_o pass_v some_o what_o further_a to_o range_v and_o bring_v into_o order_n all_o your_o house_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n that_o it_o may_v be_v unto_o he_o a_o holy_a and_o chaste_a church_n in_o the_o midst_n whereof_o he_o may_v take_v pleasure_n to_o dwell_v that_o thereby_o he_o may_v bless_v you_o and_o make_v you_o to_o prosper_v you_o know_v with_o what_o ardency_n and_o zeal_n the_o prophet_n haggai_n reproove_v the_o jew_n of_o his_o time_n 1.4_o haggai_n 1.4_o late_o return_v out_o of_o babylon_n because_o they_o build_v many_o house_n for_o themselves_o and_o do_v diligent_o seel_v and_o carve_v they_o but_o they_o have_v no_o regard_n to_o build_v up_o the_o lord_n temple_n 2.3.22_o hag._n 2.3.22_o and_o we_o must_v note_v that_o the_o prophet_n direct_v not_o his_o speech_n only_o to_o the_o people_n and_o priest_n to_o move_v they_o to_o do_v their_o duty_n for_o the_o furtherance_n and_o set_v up_o of_o this_o building_n but_o also_o unto_o zerubbabel_n the_o governor_n of_o judah_n which_o serve_v well_o to_o declare_v that_o great_a lord_n and_o magistrate_n as_o well_o as_o minister_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n ought_v withal_o their_o might_n and_o power_n to_o employ_v themselves_o for_o the_o edification_n and_o advauncement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 82.1_o rom._n 13.4_o psalm_n 82.1_o and_o thereupon_o come_v it_o too_o pass_v that_o saint_n paul_n call_v magistrate_n the_o minister_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o that_o in_o another_o place_n
15._o for_o he_o be_v a_o choose_a vessel_n unto_o i_o to_o bear_v my_o name_n before_o the_o gentile_n and_o king_n and_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n which_o be_v a_o matter_n worthy_a to_o be_v noated_a to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o shall_v careful_o look_v unto_o ourselves_o that_o we_o take_v not_o upon_o we_o to_o judge_v of_o any_o man_n rash_o and_o before_o the_o time_n chap._n iii_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o of_o the_o true_a mark_n thereof_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v the_o company_n of_o all_o those_o who_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v to_o be_v of_o christ_n flock_n as_o indeed_o they_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v amongst_o who_o notwithstanding_o many_o be_v not_o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o elect_a as_o appear_v by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o seed_n whereof_o jesus_n christ_n make_v mention_v in_o the_o 13._o chapter_n of_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o s._n matthew_n and_o by_o that_o which_o he_o say_v that_o all_o they_o which_o say_v unto_o he_o lord_n lord_n 20.16_o math._n 13.24_o matth._n 7.21_o matt._n 20.16_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n also_o that_o many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o be_v choose_v also_o by_o that_o saint_n paul_n say_v 9.6_o rom._n 9.6_o that_o all_o they_o which_o be_v of_o israel_n be_v not_o therefore_o israel_n and_o s._n john_n they_o go_v out_o from_o amongst_o we_o 2.19_o john_n 2.19_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o we_o they_o will_v have_v continue_v with_o us._n we_o have_v a_o example_n hereof_o in_o judas_n as_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o witness_v the_o same_o in_o saint_n joh._n here_o then_o we_o have_v to_o mark_v this_o 6.70.13.18_o john_n 6.70.13.18_o that_o the_o outward_a profession_n of_o christian_n religion_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n furthermore_o this_o church_n be_v know_v by_o she_o own_o proper_a mark_n which_o be_v two_o very_o principal_a and_o substantial_a the_o first_o be_v the_o pure_a preach_n of_o the_o word_n with_o a_o right_n and_o common_a consent_n thereto_o there_o be_v never_o yet_o any_o religion_n which_o be_v not_o uphold_v maintain_v and_o point_v out_o by_o some_o doctrine_n so_o we_o see_v that_o the_o gentile_n have_v have_v their_o service_n hymn_n song_n &_o praise_n unto_o their_o god_n the_o jew_n have_v the_o bark_n or_o husk_n of_o the_o law_n and_o their_o own_o thalmude_n the_o turk_n have_v the_o alcoran_n of_o their_o mahumet_n and_o the_o heretic_n also_o boast_v themselves_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o all_o these_o be_v false_a sign_n or_o mark_n but_o the_o true_a church_n have_v for_o her_o first_o and_o principal_a mark_n the_o word_n of_o god_n pure_o preach_v to_o the_o which_o the_o church_n consent_v &_o conform_v herself_o as_o we_o prove_v it_o plain_o by_o these_o place_n of_o scripture_n 10.27_o john_n 10.27_o jesus_n christ_n say_v my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o i_o know_v they_o and_o they_o follow_v i_o and_o saint_n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n 2.20_o ephe._n 2.20_o you_o be_v say_v he_o build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n and_o indeed_o if_o this_o be_v true_a as_o of_o necessity_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o by_o the_o scripture_n we_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n as_o christ_n himself_o affirm_v 5.39_o john_n 5.39_o search_v the_o scripture_n diligent_o for_o they_o be_v they_o which_o bear_v witness_v of_o i_o ought_v we_o not_o then_o by_o the_o same_o scripture_n to_o be_v guide_v and_o lead_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a and_o right_a church_n this_o matter_n the_o ancient_a father_n respect_v when_o they_o teach_v the_o the_o true_a church_n ought_v to_o show_v and_o declare_v itself_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o saint_n augustine_n say_v there_o be_v great_a disputation_n between_o we_o and_o the_o donatist_n 2._o contra_fw-la pitilia_fw-la cap._n 2._o to_o know_v where_o the_o church_n be_v what_o be_v then_o that_o we_o have_v to_o do_v herein_o shall_v we_o search_v it_o out_o in_o our_o own_o word_n or_o rather_o in_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o head_n thereof_o very_o we_o ought_v rather_o to_o seek_v for_o it_o in_o the_o word_n of_o he_o that_o be_v truth_n and_o know_v very_o well_o his_o own_o body_n for_o the_o lord_n know_v they_o that_o be_v he_o and_o again_o 166._o 2._o tim._n 2.19_o cont._n pitili_n cap._n 3._o aug._n epist_n 166._o i_o will_v not_o show_v or_o declare_v the_o church_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n also_o by_o the_o scripture_n say_v he_o we_o have_v learned_a christ_n by_o the_o scripture_n likewise_o we_o have_v learn_v to_o know_v the_o church_n we_o have_v these_o scripture_n common_a amongst_o we_o wherefore_o then_o do_v we_o not_o retain_v and_o hold_v in_o they_o both_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n and_o chrysostome_n say_v 24._o supr_fw-la matth._n exposit_n 2._o homil._n 49._o cap._n 24._o he_o that_o will_v know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n by_o what_o mean_a can_v he_o know_v it_o in_o such_o and_o so_o great_a a_o confusion_n of_o outward_a show_n if_o it_o be_v not_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n 7._o lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr jacob_n cap._n 7._o saint_n ambrose_n say_v also_o the_o true_a and_o catholic_a church_n be_v there_o where_o god_n himself_o appear_v and_o speak_v to_o his_o servant_n by_o his_o own_o word_n the_o other_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o lawful_a administration_n of_o sacrament_n 11._o cont._n faustum_n manich._n lib._n 9_o cap._n 11._o saint_n augustine_n have_v sometime_o say_v that_o man_n can_v not_o unite_v or_o knit_v themselves_o together_o in_o any_o religion_n what_o so_o ever_o be_v it_o true_a or_o false_a but_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o some_o sacrament_n or_o visible_a sign_n so_o the_o gentile_n have_v their_o sacrament_n and_o sacrifice_n the_o jew_n have_v circumcision_n and_o some_o other_o outward_a sign_n of_o their_o religion_n but_o the_o true_a church_n have_v for_o the_o second_o of_o her_o mark_n her_o own_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o jesus_n christ_n the_o head_n thereof_o that_o be_v to_o say_v baptism_n and_o the_o holy_a supper_n and_o thereunto_o must_v be_v refer_v that_o which_o saint_n augustine_n say_v the_o lord_n have_v unite_v or_o knit_v together_o the_o new_a people_n that_o be_v 1._o ad_fw-la inquisit_a januar._n ca._n 1._o the_o people_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n by_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v few_o in_o number_n easy_a in_o observation_n and_o very_o great_a in_o signification_n to_o wit_n by_o baptism_n consecrate_v or_o administer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o by_o the_o communicate_v or_o partake_v of_o his_o body_n and_o of_o his_o blood_n beside_o saint_n paul_n do_v in_o like_a sort_n right_o teach_v we_o this_o when_o he_o say_v first_o of_o baptism_n 12.13_o 1._o cor._n 12.13_o that_o we_o be_v all_o baptise_a by_o one_o spirit_n into_o one_o body_n and_o afterward_o of_o the_o supper_n we_o that_o be_v many_o 10.17_o 1._o cor._n 10.17_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n because_o we_o all_o be_v partaker_n of_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o bread_n mean_v thereby_o that_o these_o two_o sacrament_n be_v in_o such_o sort_n the_o two_o common_a sign_n of_o the_o church_n that_o by_o the_o same_o we_o be_v visible_o gather_v together_o into_o the_o house_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v there_o be_v account_v in_o the_o number_n of_o his_o household_n servant_n and_o contain_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n withal_o the_o faithful_a and_o by_o consequent_a draw_v take_v and_o separate_v from_o all_o other_o people_n &_o profane_a nation_n chap._n four_o whether_o these_o true_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v find_v among_o the_o romish_a catholik_o these_o than_o be_v the_o two_o certain_a and_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n by_o which_o man_n must_v examine_v all_o assembly_n that_o pretend_v the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o the_o church_n lest_o otherwise_o they_o be_v seduce_v and_o deceive_v wherefore_o if_o a_o man_n will_v know_v whether_o the_o true_a church_n be_v among_o the_o romish_a catholic_n or_o no_o we_o need_v not_o have_v recourse_n to_o any_o other_o proof_n or_o touchstone_n then_o this_o only_a but_o it_o shall_v behoove_v we_o to_o hold_v and_o to_o keep_v in_o memory_n one_o foundation_n or_o sure_a ground_n to_o wit_n that_o these_o two_o mark_n must_v always_o be_v retain_v and_o keep_v in_o their_o purity_n without_o be_v any_o manner_n of_o way_n
titus_n 1.7_o etc._n etc._n describe_v what_o quality_n and_o condition_n ought_v to_o be_v always_o in_o those_o which_o shall_v be_v choose_v for_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n make_v any_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o this_o succession_n no_o indeed_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o have_v be_v very_o fit_a yea_o necessary_a if_o the_o succession_n whereof_o we_o speak_v have_v be_v whole_o require_v in_o a_o bishop_n or_o pastor_n to_o make_v his_o vocation_n sure_a certain_a and_o lawful_a but_o that_o we_o may_v not_o speak_v confuse_o of_o this_o point_n we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o the_o succession_n of_o person_n or_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o chair_n and_o place_n and_o between_o the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n and_o office_n as_o concern_v the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v altogether_o on_o our_o side_n &_o no_o whit_n at_o all_o on_o the_o romishe_a catholic_n side_n for_o we_o make_v profession_n to_o teach_v the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n alone_o follow_v therein_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n whereas_o they_o of_o the_o romish_a church_n stay_v themselves_o upon_o their_o invention_n teach_v for_o doctrine_n 15.9_o matt._n 15.9_o the_o tradition_n and_o commandment_n of_o man_n which_o thing_n jesus_n christ_n express_o forbid_v and_o as_o touch_v that_o succession_n which_o concern_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o office_n or_o of_o all_o the_o charge_n and_o duty_n of_o pastor_n which_o consist_v in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n pure_o in_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n lawful_o in_o care_v for_o the_o poor_a in_o visit_v the_o sick_a in_o redress_v offence_n in_o exhort_v comfort_v teach_v reprove_v and_o such_o like_a exercise_n truth_n itself_o and_o experience_n do_v sufficient_o show_v who_o do_v indeed_o and_o very_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n therein_o whether_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n or_o we_o dei_fw-la lib._n 19_o cap._n 19_o de_fw-la civitat_fw-la dei_fw-la saint_n augustine_n have_v sometime_o say_v that_o the_o name_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v a_o name_n of_o charge_n or_o burden_n and_o not_o of_o honour_n &_o that_o he_o indeed_o be_v a_o bishop_n which_o desire_v to_o profit_v his_o flock_n in_o teach_v they_o and_o not_o simple_o to_o bear_v rule_n over_o the_o same_o 11._o aug._n count_n cresco_n grammat_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 11._o also_o in_o a_o other_o place_n we_o be_v not_o bishop_n of_o ourselves_o but_o for_o they_o to_o who_o we_o administer_v the_o word_n &_o sacrament_n now_o here_o i_o speak_v unto_o all_o cardinal_n bishop_n abbot_n prior_n curate_n and_o other_o priest_n together_o with_o their_o pope_n himself_o and_o will_v they_o to_o examine_v and_o judge_v themselves_o in_o their_o own_o conference_n and_o see_v whether_o they_o can_v with_o good_a right_n boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n in_o sound_a doctrine_n and_o in_o faithful_a execution_n of_o their_o charge_n and_o office_n and_o to_o mark_v how_o they_o observe_v these_o canon_n which_o they_o attribute_v to_o the_o apostle_n whereof_o the_o fifty_o eight_o canon_n 58._o can._n apost_n can_v 58._o excommunicate_v the_o bishop_n and_o elder_n who_o have_v not_o any_o care_n either_o of_o their_o clergy_n or_o of_o the_o people_n the_o charge_n of_o who_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o and_o which_o do_v not_o teach_v they_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o true_a religion_n which_o canon_n also_o ordein_v that_o if_o such_o continue_v in_o their_o negligence_n and_o carelessness_n they_o shall_v be_v depose_v there_o rest_v the_o succession_n of_o person_n or_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o church_n or_o place_n touch_v which_o first_o we_o say_v that_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n do_v not_o always_o aid_v themselves_o with_o this_o argument_n when_o they_o be_v to_o fight_v with_o heretic_n for_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o such_o as_o do_v receive_v and_o allow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o themselves_o the_o dispute_n and_o matter_n in_o controversy_n between_o they_o be_v only_o in_o the_o true_a interpretation_n thereof_o they_o content_v themselves_o to_o allege_v scripture_n expound_v place_n one_o by_o a_o other_o even_o as_o saint_n augustine_n say_v that_o that_o which_o be_v dark_a in_o one_o august_n august_n be_v clear_a and_o manifest_a in_o a_o other_o but_o when_o they_o be_v to_o reason_n against_o they_o that_o will_v add_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o manichaeus_n who_o will_v that_o man_n shall_v receive_v his_o epistle_n which_o he_o call_v fundamentable_a even_o as_o it_o be_v the_o gospel_n itself_o there_o and_o in_o that_o respect_n they_o serve_v their_o turn_n with_o the_o argument_n of_o succession_n and_o yet_o when_o they_o use_v it_o it_o be_v not_o either_o their_o only_a or_o their_o principal_a defence_n for_o in_o the_o first_o place_n they_o show_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o they_o be_v in_o error_n and_o afterwards_o add_v as_o a_o good_a bulwark_n or_o mean_a of_o resistance_n the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n witness_v by_o a_o continual_a succession_n of_o all_o age_n and_o time_n also_o they_o help_v themselves_o therewith_o as_o with_o a_o very_a likely_a or_o probable_a argument_n and_o good_a enough_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o truth_n against_o error_n but_o yet_o not_o so_o as_o though_o it_o have_v a_o like_a force_n and_o strength_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o error_n against_o truth_n itself_o last_o when_o they_o demand_v of_o heretic_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v from_o who_o they_o descend_v who_o be_v their_o predecessor_n etc._n etc._n they_o mean_v not_o to_o speak_v of_o their_o vocation_n or_o calling_n which_o they_o never_o call_v into_o doubt_n or_o question_n for_o the_o great_a number_n of_o they_o be_v bishop_n as_o nestorius_n be_v bishop_n of_o constantinople_n samosatenus_fw-la of_o antioch_n all_o lawful_o call_v and_o have_v right_a and_o authority_n to_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n but_o they_o mean_v to_o speak_v of_o their_o doctrine_n which_o be_v new_a and_o not_o hear_v of_o before_o wherefore_o when_o they_o allege_v or_o lay_v succession_n for_o themselves_o they_o do_v not_o so_o much_o mean_v the_o occupy_v of_o the_o chair_n or_o enjoy_v of_o the_o place_n as_o the_o continuance_n conformity_n and_o agreement_n of_o the_o doctrine_n whereas_o on_o the_o otherside_n our_o adversary_n do_v not_o demand_v of_o we_o who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o our_o doctrine_n but_o inquire_v of_o we_o touch_v our_o vocation_n and_o calling_n and_o be_v content_v with_o this_o to_o declare_v that_o their_o bishop_n be_v descend_v from_o all_o antiquity_n but_o not_o their_o doctrine_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o deceive_v themselves_o for_o neither_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n neither_o long_a time_n after_o such_o bishop_n as_o be_v now_o in_o the_o popedom_n have_v any_o place_n so_o that_o a_o man_n may_v safe_o say_v they_o be_v not_o descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n nor_o from_o the_o true_a successor_n to_o conclude_v we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v very_o certain_a that_o such_o a_o succession_n of_o the_o pastor_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v of_o great_a weight_n and_o importance_n because_o the_o pastor_n at_o that_o time_n have_v not_o only_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o pastor_n but_o do_v withal_o faithful_o exercise_v the_o charge_n and_o office_n thereof_o but_o what_o be_v at_o this_o day_n the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n let_v the_o most_o sound_o judge_v thereof_o be_v the_o controversy_n in_o the_o church_n touch_v succession_n to_o some_o inheritance_n to_o have_v the_o possession_n and_o enjoy_n thereof_o no_o but_o rather_o for_o man_n to_o set_v their_o hand_n to_o work_v and_o labour_n as_o the_o apostle_n have_v do_v to_o watch_v diligent_o over_o christ_n flock_n and_o to_o minister_v unto_o it_o the_o food_n which_o be_v necessary_a and_o meet_a for_o it_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v if_o any_o man_n desire_v the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n 3.1_o 1._o tim._n 3.1_o he_o desire_v a_o good_a or_o excellent_a work_n and_o again_o speak_v unto_o bishop_n 20.28_o act._n 20.28_o take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o say_v he_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a flock_n whereof_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o bishop_n or_o overseer_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o s._n peter_n the_o elder_n 5.12_o 1._o pet._n 5.12_o which_o be_v among_o you_o i_o beseech_v which_o be_o also_o a_o elder_a with_o they_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o you_o care_v for_o it_o not_o by_o consent_n etc._n etc._n the_o succession_n then_o of_o the_o chair_n or_o place_n be_v nothing_o without_o the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n &_o duty_n 4._o cyprian_a lib._n 1._o epl_n 4._o for_o if_o the_o bishop_n be_v dead_a as_o say_v s._n cyprian_n when_o no_o
sound_n go_v forth_o of_o his_o mouth_n if_o he_o be_v dead_a as_o say_v s._n gregory_n when_o he_o preach_v not_o 24_o greg._n epl_a 24_o by_o what_o title_n may_v a_o man_n say_v that_o the_o romish_a bishop_n and_o priest_n succeed_v the_o the_o apostle_n and_o have_v the_o possession_n of_o their_o chair_n or_o place_n if_o they_o be_v dead_a or_o altogether_o dumb_a or_o else_o not_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o doctrine_n &_o truth_n for_o let_v we_o a_o little_a behold_v how_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v join_v and_o knit_v the_o succession_n of_o person_n or_o place_n with_o the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n and_o office_n 43.44_o irenae_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 43.44_o irenaeus_n say_v we_o be_v command_v to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o the_o elder_n which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n who_o have_v their_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o together_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n have_v receive_v according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o the_o father_n certain_a grace_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n tertullian_n say_v also_o if_o some_o heresy_n dare_v be_v so_o bold_a to_o intermingle_v themselves_o with_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n thereby_o to_o make_v man_n believe_v that_o they_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o because_o they_o be_v under_o the_o apostle_n or_o in_o their_o day_n we_o may_v say_v let_v they_o show_v then_o the_o beginning_n of_o their_o church_n let_v they_o unfold_v or_o discover_v the_o succession_n of_o their_o bishop_n in_o such_o sort_n run_v and_o flow_v by_o continual_a order_n from_o the_o beginning_n that_o the_o first_o bishop_n have_v have_v some_o of_o the_o apostle_n for_o his_o author_n and_o predecessor_n or_o some_o one_o of_o they_o who_o be_v the_o follower_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o also_o do_v notwithstanding_o persevere_v and_o continue_v with_o the_o apostle_n and_o a_o little_a after_o the_o church_n say_v he_o which_o be_v plant_v after_o the_o apostle_n time_n &_o those_o which_o be_v yet_o plant_v at_o this_o day_n although_o that_o they_o bring_v not_o any_o author_n for_o they_o from_o amongst_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o apostolical_a person_n yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v find_v consent_v in_o the_o same_o faith_n they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v hold_v take_v or_o acknowledge_v for_o any_o other_o then_o apostolical_a pro_fw-la consanguinitate_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la say_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o the_o nighnesse_n in_o blood_n or_o by_o reason_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o maintain_v keep_v and_o hold_v with_o the_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o ordain_v and_o set_v up_o s._n augustine_n write_v to_o one_o generosus_fw-la 156._o aug._n epist_n 156._o do_v so_o extol_v the_o succession_n and_o continual_a order_n of_o pastor_n that_o he_o name_v thirty_o bishop_n of_o rome_n put_v anastasius_n for_o the_o nine_o and_o thirty_o but_o he_o add_v even_o present_o or_o immediate_o after_o in_o all_o this_o rank_n or_o band_n there_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v one_o donatist_n 4._o epist_n fundament_n cap._n 4._o and_o against_o the_o manichee_n he_o write_v thus_o there_o be_v very_o many_o thing_n which_o hold_v and_o keep_v i_o in_o the_o lap_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o consent_n of_o people_n and_o nation_n the_o authority_n which_o be_v begin_v by_o miracle_n nourish_v through_o hope_n augment_v by_o charity_n and_o confirm_v by_o antiquity_n moreover_o the_o succession_n of_o pastor_n even_o from_o the_o seat_n of_o saint_n peter_n to_o he_o that_o be_v at_o this_o day_n present_a and_o a_o little_a after_o but_o on_o your_o part_n say_v he_o to_o the_o manichee_n you_o allege_v or_o bring_v forth_o no_o such_o thing_n but_o only_o you_o retain_v or_o stand_v to_o a_o promise_n of_o truth_n which_o indeed_o if_o it_o do_v declare_v itself_o so_o evident_o that_o a_o man_n can_v not_o any_o more_o doubt_n thereof_o i_o confess_v &_o consent_v that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o antiquity_n succession_n and_o all_o other_o thing_n habetur_fw-la hierom._n epist_n 1._o ad_fw-la heliodor_n &_o habetur_fw-la s._n hierome_n they_o be_v not_o say_v he_o the_o son_n and_o child_n of_o holy_a man_n that_o hold_v and_o possess_v the_o place_n of_o holy_a man_n but_o they_o which_o follow_v their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_v their_o work_n can._n distinct_a 40._o can._n and_o chrysostome_n in_o a_o certain_a place_n there_o be_v say_v he_o many_o elder_n and_o few_o elder_n many_o in_o name_n and_o few_o in_o deed_n behold_v my_o brethren_n how_o you_o be_v place_v and_o set_v in_o the_o chair_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o chair_n or_o place_n that_o make_v a_o elder_a but_o the_o elder_a the_o chair_n or_o place_n behold_v after_o what_o manner_n and_o sort_n the_o ancient_a writer_n have_v speak_v but_o will_v we_o know_v in_o one_o word_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o what_o value_n be_v the_o most_o common_a and_o old_a succession_n that_o a_o man_n can_v suppose_v if_o the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n be_v want_v s._n paul_n teach_v it_o we_o 1.8_o gal._n 1.8_o write_v to_o the_o galathian_o when_o he_o say_v if_o we_o ourselves_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n preach_v unto_o you_o otherwise_o then_o that_o which_o we_o have_v preach_v unto_o you_o let_v he_o be_v accurse_v moreover_o i_o will_v glad_o demand_v of_o the_o romish_a catholic_n for_o what_o cause_n they_o hold_v not_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n for_o true_a church_n they_o will_v not_o say_v that_o it_o be_v because_o that_o succession_n be_v not_o on_o their_o side_n for_o they_o want_v not_o that_o but_o it_o be_v on_o their_o side_n even_o as_o old_a and_o ancient_a at_o the_o least_o as_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n wherefore_o they_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o it_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o doctrine_n receive_v amongst_o they_o to_o wit_n because_o they_o hold_v not_o the_o pope_n for_o their_o head_n because_o they_o deny_v purgatory_n because_o their_o minister_n be_v marry_v because_o they_o celebrate_v and_o minister_v the_o holy_a supper_n with_o leaven_a bread_n because_o they_o give_v both_o kind_n to_o the_o people_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n now_o if_o as_o touch_v the_o east_n church_n the_o papist_n judge_v of_o the_o church_n not_o by_o succession_n but_o by_o doctrine_n wherefore_o do_v they_o when_o they_o dispute_v with_o we_o stay_v themselves_o rather_o upon_o succession_n then_o upon_o the_o doctrine_n see_v that_o the_o question_n in_o controversy_n between_o we_o be_v to_o examine_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n secondary_o touch_v the_o matter_n of_o succession_n we_o say_v that_o if_o we_o shall_v enter_v into_o the_o sift_v of_o the_o succession_n of_o pope_n &_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o shall_v easy_o find_v that_o if_o man_n will_v thereby_o judge_v of_o their_o vocation_n or_o calling_n it_o shall_v not_o serve_v their_o turn_n very_o much_o or_o stand_v they_o in_o any_o great_a stead_n for_o this_o we_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o find_v that_o they_o have_v oftentimes_o succeed_v tyrant_n schismatics_n excommunicate_a person_n and_o bishop_n or_o pope_n not_o lawful_o call_v for_o what_o be_v gregory_n the_o seven_o who_o be_v name_v before_o he_o come_v to_o the_o popedom_n hildebrand_n vispergen_n vispergen_n vispergensis_n witness_v that_o he_o usurp_v the_o papal_a seat_n through_o tyranny_n and_o not_o by_o a_o lawful_a vocation_n and_o the_o council_n hold_v at_o worm_n wormat._n council_n wormat._n in_o the_o year_n 1080._o say_v also_o of_o the_o say_v hildebrand_n that_o he_o be_v not_o choose_v by_o god_n but_o that_o he_o do_v without_o shame_n thrust_v in_o himself_o thither_o by_o deceit_n and_o money_n &_o that_o he_o overthrow_v the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n that_o he_o be_v a_o offensive_a person_n a_o mover_n of_o debate_n and_o a_o observer_n of_o divination_n and_o dream_n yea_o a_o manifest_a necromancer_n or_o conjurer_n what_o be_v the_o woman_n pope_n joan_n about_o the_o year_n 854_o platina_n platina_n platina_n in_o her_o life_n say_v that_o she_o be_v a_o english_a woman_n who_o in_o her_o youth_n follow_v and_o accompany_v a_o young_a scholar_n in_o study_n and_o profit_v so_o well_o therein_o that_o at_o rome_n she_o be_v esteem_v amongst_o the_o most_o skilful_a and_o learned_a for_o which_o cause_n she_o be_v exalt_v to_o be_v pope_n they_o suppose_v she_o have_v be_v a_o man_n but_o she_o be_v find_v great_a with_o child_n and_o at_o the_o last_o deliver_v in_o a_o open_a street_n and_o as_o they_o be_v go_v in_o solemn_a procession_n upon_o the_o shoulder_n of_o those_o that_o carry_v she_o where_o also_o she_o die_v what_o be_v benedict_n the_o nine_o the_o story_n writer_n declare_v that_o after_o he_o
and_o lawful_a succession_n of_o the_o chair_n or_o place_n be_v on_o our_o side_n for_o there_o the_o ordinary_a bishop_n have_v receive_v the_o gospel_n and_o preach_v it_o so_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o dispute_v of_o their_o vocation_n no_o more_o then_o for_o the_o call_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o be_v at_o this_o present_a in_o the_o romish_a church_n call_v by_o the_o pope_n but_o even_o only_o of_o their_o doctrine_n chap._n vi_o that_o the_o church_n have_v be_v always_o from_o the_o beginning_n be_v now_o and_o shall_v be_v even_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n but_o that_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v esteem_v or_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o great_a number_n we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o the_o church_n have_v her_o beginning_n where_o the_o apostle_n begin_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n throughout_o all_o the_o world_n at_o which_o time_n the_o disciple_n be_v first_o name_v christian_n in_o antiochia_n but_o that_o she_o begin_v to_o be_v in_o the_o world_n even_o from_o the_o very_a time_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n adam_n and_o hevah_n for_o in_o they_o and_o by_o they_o god_n begin_v to_o be_v serve_v on_o the_o earth_n have_v bless_v they_o and_o commend_v unto_o they_o his_o service_n and_o after_o their_o fall_n have_v preach_v unto_o they_o repentance_n and_o assurance_n of_o victory_n against_o the_o serpent_n through_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n but_o the_o world_n increase_v the_o church_n also_o be_v augment_v serve_v god_n for_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v god_n create_v the_o world_n 17.26_o act._n 17.26_o &_o have_v make_v of_o one_o blood_n all_o man_n that_o they_o may_v seek_v and_o serve_v he_o and_o he_o himself_o say_v in_o isaiah_n this_o people_n have_v i_o form_v for_o myself_o 43.21_o isai_n 43.21_o they_o shall_v rehearse_v and_o show_v forth_o my_o praise_n god_n then_o create_v in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o from_o the_o beginning_n a_o church_n through_o free_a adoption_n to_o this_o end_n that_o his_o name_n may_v be_v due_o praise_v by_o convenient_a fit_a and_o meet_v witness_n for_o so_o excellent_a a_o work_n for_o this_o cause_n also_o the_o church_n be_v call_v the_o plant_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o he_o may_v be_v glorify_v 61.3_o isai_n 61.3_o isaiah_n 61.3_o moreover_o this_o church_n notwithstanding_o the_o sharp_a and_o hard_a persecution_n which_o it_o have_v suffer_v have_v not_o yet_o cease_v always_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v at_o this_o present_a and_o shall_v be_v unto_o the_o world_n end_n for_o as_o david_n say_v the_o lord_n have_v choose_v zion_n etc._n psa_fw-la 132.13_o etc._n etc._n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n and_o have_v desire_v it_o for_o his_o seat_n it_o have_v be_v say_v he_o my_o rest_n for_o ever_o 28.20_o matt._n 28.20_o jesus_n christ_n also_o have_v promise_v his_o disciple_n to_o be_v with_o they_o always_o even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o chief_o saint_n paul_n have_v declare_v and_o set_v out_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o continuance_n of_o the_o church_n when_o he_o assure_v we_o 3.21_o ephes_n 3.21_o that_o god_n shall_v be_v glorify_v in_o the_o church_n through_o jesus_n christ_n throughout_o all_o generation_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o they_o then_o be_v overmuch_o past_a shame_n which_o limit_v the_o continuance_n of_o the_o church_n to_o a_o certain_a time_n as_o those_o of_o who_o saint_n augustine_n speak_v 54_o august_n de_fw-fr civitat_fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 18._o ca._n 54_o who_o dare_v bold_o affirm_v that_o the_o christian_n religion_n shall_v not_o last_v but_o 365._o year_n they_o likewise_o do_v abuse_n and_o deceive_v themselves_o which_o think_v that_o by_o the_o assault_n which_o they_o give_v unto_o the_o church_n they_o be_v able_a to_o beat_v it_o down_o consume_v it_o &_o whole_o take_v it_o away_o out_o of_o the_o world_n for_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o god_n shall_v be_v without_o a_o church_n etc._n psal_n 100.1_o etc._n etc._n have_v not_o he_o himself_o promise_v that_o his_o son_n shall_v reign_v and_o bear_v rule_n for_o ever_o over_o all_o his_o enemy_n very_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o spouse_n or_o wife_n of_o christ_n be_v become_v or_o make_v so_o mighty_a and_o strong_a through_o her_o husband_n that_o be_v even_o one_o body_n with_o he_o she_o be_v more_o forcible_a and_o mighty_a in_o her_o weakness_n than_o all_o the_o world_n in_o his_o pride_n and_o haughtiness_n but_o as_o we_o have_v already_o say_v once_o heretofore_o we_o will_v hereafter_o speak_v more_o ample_o and_o large_o of_o the_o church_n force_n and_o power_n in_o persecution_n to_o be_v short_a amongst_o so_o many_a and_o so_o diverse_a change_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n god_n always_o preserve_v his_o church_n and_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o nothing_o in_o all_o the_o world_n be_v durable_a and_o perpetual_a but_o she_o not_o that_o she_o be_v always_o flourish_v or_o have_v a_o continuance_n which_o follow_v all_o by_o one_o thread_n that_o be_v come_v altogether_o but_o because_o that_o god_n not_o mind_v that_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v put_v out_o in_o the_o world_n do_v always_o in_o his_o church_n raise_v up_o some_o of_o who_o he_o be_v sincere_o and_o pure_o serve_v now_o when_o the_o question_n be_v to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n from_o the_o false_a some_o there_o be_v that_o stay_n themselves_o upon_o the_o multitude_n and_o great_a number_n but_o they_o be_v very_o far_o from_o their_o right_a reckon_n or_o account_n for_o god_n measure_v not_o his_o church_n by_o the_o number_n 18.20_o matt._n 18.20_o he_o love_v his_o faithful_a people_n &_o keep_v himself_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o although_o they_o be_v a_o very_a small_a number_n on_o the_o otherside_n he_o hate_v those_o that_o do_v despise_v it_o and_o disdain_v they_o though_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v never_o so_o great_a and_o indeed_o on_o the_o side_n of_o the_o multitude_n and_o great_a number_n the_o false_a and_o bastardly_a church_n be_v rather_o find_v than_o the_o true_a and_o lawful_a one_o and_o that_o it_o be_v so_o let_v we_o first_o mark_n the_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o withdraw_v we_o from_o the_o multitude_n and_o teach_v we_o to_o stay_v and_o cleave_v to_o the_o little_a flock_n 23.2_o exod._n 23.2_o thou_o shall_v not_o follow_v a_o multitude_n to_o do_v evil_a neither_o agree_v in_o a_o controversy_n to_o decline_v after_o many_o and_o to_o overthrow_v the_o truth_n 7.13.14_o matth._n 7.13.14_o enter_v in_o at_o the_o straight_a gate_n for_o it_o be_v the_o wide_a gate_n and_o broad_a way_n which_o lead_v to_o destruction_n &_o many_o there_o be_v which_o go_v in_o thereat_o because_o the_o gate_n be_v straight_o and_o the_o way_n narrow_a that_o lead_v unto_o life_n and_o few_o there_o be_v that_o find_v it_o fear_v not_o little_a flock_n 12.32_o luk._n 12.32_o for_o it_o be_v your_o father_n pleasure_n to_o give_v you_o a_o kingdom_n we_o see_v by_o these_o place_n that_o the_o great_a number_n be_v not_o always_o the_o best_a neither_o the_o sound_a and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v find_v rather_o amongst_o the_o small_a number_n then_o among_o the_o multitude_n second_o let_v we_o note_v the_o reason_n follow_v which_o be_v take_v from_o example_n that_o we_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n touch_v this_o very_a matter_n on_o which_o side_n be_v the_o church_n 11.7_o gene._n 7.1_o heb._n 11.7_o when_o noah_n alone_o with_o his_o little_a family_n which_o be_v not_o in_o all_o but_o eight_o person_n follow_v the_o true_a religion_n god_n approve_v he_o &_o by_o his_o faith_n condemn_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n on_o which_o side_n be_v the_o church_n 19.10_o 1._o kin._n 19.10_o when_o elijah_n say_v o_o lord_n the_o child_n of_o israel_n have_v forsake_v thy_o covenant_n they_o have_v destroy_v thy_o altar_n and_o slay_v thy_o prophet_n with_o the_o sword_n and_o i_o be_o leave_v altogether_o alone_o and_o yet_o they_o seek_v my_o soul_n to_o take_v it_o away_o on_o which_o side_n be_v the_o church_n when_o the_o four_o hundred_o prophet_n deceive_v ahab_n 22.8_o ●_o king_n 22.8_o and_o michaiah_n be_v alone_o and_o contemn_a do_v yet_o notwithstanding_o resist_v they_o and_o speak_v the_o truth_n on_o which_o side_n be_v the_o church_n when_o jeremiah_n be_v send_v from_o god_n to_o say_v 4.9_o jere._n 4.9_o in_o that_o day_n the_o heart_n of_o the_o king_n shall_v perish_v and_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o of_o the_o priest_n shall_v be_v astonish_v 10.18_o jere._n 10.18_o and_o the_o prophet_n shall_v wonder_v and_o that_o therefore_o the_o prophet_n resist_v he_o lay_v crime_n unto_o his_o charge_n and_o imagine_a mischief_n against_o he_o on_o which_o side_n be_v the_o church_n when_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o scribe_n 26.3_o
matth._n 26.3_o and_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n assemble_v themselves_o together_o into_o the_o hall_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n name_v caiaphas_n and_o hold_v a_o council_n how_o they_o may_v take_v jesus_n christ_n by_o subtlety_n and_o put_v he_o to_o death_n certain_o by_o these_o example_n it_o be_v plain_o prove_v that_o if_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o allege_v the_o multitude_n &_o the_o great_a number_n for_o to_o underproppe_v and_o uphold_v a_o church_n the_o false_a and_o bastardly_a church_n shall_v ever_o prevail_v in_o the_o matter_n &_o get_v the_o better_a in_o that_o respect_n because_o that_o the_o number_n which_o cleave_v to_o it_o and_o follow_v and_o maintain_v it_o be_v always_o the_o great_a 128._o august_n in_o psalm_n 128._o let_v we_o add_v here_o a_o sentence_n of_o saint_n augustine_n from_o the_o time_n say_v he_o that_o the_o saint_n have_v begin_v to_o be_v the_o church_n have_v be_v and_o be_v on_o the_o earth_n sometime_o it_o be_v in_o abel_n alone_o who_o be_v slay_v by_o his_o wicked_a brother_n cain_n sometime_o it_o be_v in_o henoch_n alone_o who_o be_v reject_v of_o the_o ungodlie_a sometime_o it_o be_v in_o the_o only_a house_n of_o noah_n and_o he_o bear_v with_o or_o suffer_v all_o they_o that_o perish_v in_o the_o flood_n and_o the_o ark_n swim_v upon_o the_o flood_n be_v save_v and_o set_v upon_o the_o dry_a land_n sometime_o in_o one_o only_a abraham_n of_o who_o we_o know_v thus_o much_o that_o he_o suffer_v many_o thing_n by_o the_o wicked_a sometime_o in_o lott_n alone_o and_o in_o his_o only_a house_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o sodomite_n who_o iniquity_n and_o ungodliness_n he_o endure_v and_o suffer_v so_o long_o till_o god_n draw_v he_o as_o it_o be_v by_o violence_n from_o among_o they_o sometime_o in_o the_o only_a israelite_n torment_v by_o pharaoh_n and_o the_o egyptian_n by_o these_o word_n that_o appear_v very_o well_o to_o be_v true_a and_o right_a which_o i_o have_v say_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v or_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o great_a number_n the_o faithful_a then_o shall_v not_o at_o this_o day_n be_v offend_v though_o they_o be_v but_o a_o small_a number_n despise_v and_o cast_v out_o as_o the_o filth_n and_o ofscouring_n of_o the_o world_n for_o because_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o world_n 15.19_o john_n 15.19_o but_o that_o god_n have_v choose_v and_o draw_v they_o out_o of_o the_o world_n therefore_o behold_v do_v the_o world_n hate_v they_o they_o shall_v not_o doubt_n that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o with_o they_o though_o that_o it_o be_v assault_v and_o persecute_v of_o the_o great_a number_n of_o man_n and_o those_o the_o mighty_a of_o great_a reputation_n and_o high_a exalt_v and_o namely_o of_o the_o pope_n cardinal_n bishop_n 1.27.28.29_o 1_o cor._n 1.27.28.29_o parish_n priest_n abbot_n and_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n who_o indeed_o ought_v to_o maintain_v and_o uphold_v it_o for_o so_o it_o be_v that_o god_n have_v choose_v the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a thing_n &_o the_o weak_a or_o feeble_a thing_n to_o confound_v the_o strong_a and_o the_o vile_a and_o despise_a thing_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o to_o bring_v to_o naught_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o the_o end_n that_o no_o flesh_n shall_v rejoice_v in_o his_o presence_n 2.7_o psal_n 118.22_o matt._n 21.42_o 1._o pet._n 2.7_o and_o on_o the_o otherside_n the_o prophecy_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v whole_o accomplish_v touch_v the_o stone_n which_o the_o builder_n begin_v long_o ago_o to_o reject_v and_o which_o even_o at_o this_o day_n they_o do_v also_o refuse_v although_o it_o be_v the_o master_n stone_n or_o chief_a stone_n of_o the_o corner_n in_o zion_n elect_v &_o precious_a in_o they_o which_o stay_v themselves_o thereon_o and_o be_v build_v upon_o it_o but_o some_o will_v say_v wherefore_o then_o be_v it_o that_o god_n have_v heretofore_o suffer_v so_o many_o people_n in_o so_o many_o age_n and_o time_n to_o be_v seduce_v and_o deceive_v yea_o wherefore_o do_v he_o at_o this_o day_n suffer_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n to_o walk_v in_o the_o darkeness_n of_o error_n and_o ignorance_n very_o it_o be_v not_o our_o part_n to_o take_v upon_o we_o either_o to_o discover_v or_o curious_o to_o search_v the_o secret_a cause_n of_o god_n eternal_a judgement_n neither_o yet_o to_o lay_v or_o cast_v upon_o he_o the_o fault_n of_o our_o naughtiness_n and_o ungodliness_n for_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o he_o do_v most_o just_o govern_v and_o guide_v all_o thing_n and_o therefore_o can_v do_v injury_n or_o wrong_n to_o any_o man_n what_o so_o ever_o he_o do_v 2.3_o psal_n 51.5_o ephe._n 2.3_o see_v that_o we_o be_v all_o conceive_a and_o bear_v in_o iniquity_n and_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n guilty_a of_o death_n and_o eternal_a damnation_n and_o therefore_o saint_n paul_n in_o few_o word_n dissolve_v this_o difficulty_n content_v himself_o to_o allege_v the_o only_a will_n and_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n without_o ascend_v or_o go_v up_o high_o so_o much_o as_o one_o step_n 17.30_o act._n 14_o 1●_n act._n 17.30_o god_n say_v he_o in_o time_n pass_v have_v suffer_v all_o the_o gentile_n to_o walk_v in_o their_o own_o way_n nevertheless_o he_o leave_v not_o himself_o without_o witness_n in_o that_o he_o do_v good_a etc._n etc._n and_o again_o the_o time_n of_o this_o ignorance_n god_n regard_v not_o but_o now_o he_o admonish_v all_o man_n every_o where_o to_o repent_v notwithstanding_o also_o we_o may_v right_o say_v that_o god_n suffer_v satan_n to_o have_v so_o much_o power_n and_o might_n in_o the_o world_n as_o that_o he_o shall_v bear_v sway_n &_o reign_v over_o the_o great_a part_n to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v thereby_o through_o his_o just_a judgement_n punish_v man_n for_o their_o unthankfulness_n and_o unfaithfulnesse_n for_o it_o be_v not_o good_a reason_n that_o those_o which_o will_v not_o hearken_v unto_o god_n neither_o receive_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v offer_v they_o and_o who_o also_o even_o willing_o and_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n have_v despise_v and_o refuse_v their_o own_o salvation_n be_v it_o not_o meet_v i_o say_v that_o such_o shall_v be_v seduce_v &_o deceive_v through_o the_o subtlety_n and_o sleight_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o at_o the_o last_o cast_v from_o god_n and_o through_o his_o just_a judgement_n punish_v according_a as_o their_o ungodliness_n &_o unthankfulness_n deserve_v saint_n paul_n write_v unto_o the_o thessalonian_o show_v and_o put_v down_o this_o reason_n when_o he_o say_v 2.10_o 2._o thess_n 2.10_o that_o because_o that_o they_o which_o perish_v receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v god_n shall_v send_v they_o strong_a delusion_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v lie_n that_o all_o they_o may_v be_v damn_v which_o believe_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o word_n but_o have_v pleasure_n in_o unrighteousness_n this_o also_o fall_v sometime_o and_o be_v lay_v upon_o the_o gentile_n for_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n etc._n rom._n 1.20_o etc._n etc._n god_n make_v manifest_a unto_o they_o his_o godhead_n and_o his_o power_n and_o although_o this_o be_v not_o do_v by_o the_o preach_v of_o man_n yet_o it_o be_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o creature_n in_o which_o his_o glory_n be_v in_o such_o sort_n manifest_v and_o show_v that_o a_o man_n may_v well_o say_v they_o have_v in_o some_o sense_n a_o tongue_n as_o it_o be_v to_o show_v set_v forth_o and_o rehearse_v the_o great_a power_n and_o the_o wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n but_o what_o thereof_o these_o straggler_n &_o strayer_n have_v know_v god_n do_v not_o glorify_v he_o as_o god_n neither_o yield_v he_o thanks_n but_o become_v vain_a in_o their_o imagination_n and_o discourse_n and_o so_o forth_o as_o saint_n paul_n show_v of_o they_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n who_o will_v then_o at_o this_o day_n say_v that_o god_n have_v do_v they_o wrong_n when_o he_o give_v they_o over_o to_o the_o lust_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n to_o filthiness_n and_o their_o own_o villainous_a affection_n through_o a_o spirit_n destitute_a and_o unfurnished_a of_o all_o judgement_n to_o commit_v thing_n at_o no_o hand_n convenient_a or_o seemly_a he_o punish_v they_o after_o this_o manner_n according_a to_o their_o desert_n and_o his_o own_o most_o just_a righteousness_n the_o same_o fall_v also_o in_o time_n heretofore_o upon_o the_o poor_a and_o miserable_a jew_n for_o behold_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o of_o his_o own_o free_a will_n present_v and_o offer_v himself_o unto_o they_o be_v willing_a and_o ready_a to_o instruct_v and_o teach_v they_o in_o the_o
doctrine_n of_o salvation_n confirm_v his_o gospel_n by_o excellent_a miracle_n and_o authentical_a sign_n worthy_a of_o credit_n by_o which_o he_o do_v evident_o show_v unto_o they_o that_o he_o be_v the_o very_a messiah_n promise_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o true_a and_o only_a redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n but_o how_o do_v these_o miserable_a people_n govern_v and_o behave_v they_o self_n in_o that_o behalf_n their_o obstinacy_n and_o rebellion_n be_v so_o great_a that_o they_o be_v not_o only_o content_a desperate_o to_o reject_v and_o throw_v from_o they_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n slander_v it_o and_o accuse_v it_o of_o falsehood_n but_o which_o be_v worse_o they_o kill_v and_o cruel_o murder_v the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n and_o outrageous_o persecute_v the_o apostle_n as_o before_o that_o they_o have_v put_v to_o death_n also_o even_o their_o own_o prophet_n and_o other_o christian_n who_o be_v he_o then_o which_o will_v affirm_v that_o these_o wicked_a people_n do_v not_o through_o their_o rebellion_n and_o pride_n just_o deserve_v to_o be_v deliver_v and_o give_v over_o for_o a_o pray_v unto_o satan_n and_o to_o be_v deceive_v through_o the_o subtlety_n and_o craft_n of_o his_o false_a doctrine_n the_o same_o be_v fall_v out_o in_o our_o time_n and_o continue_v yet_o even_o every_o day_n for_o there_o be_v diverse_a which_o be_v in_o such_o sort_n blind_v &_o before_o hand_n possess_v with_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o despise_v all_o true_a religion_n and_o doctrine_n but_o also_o they_o enforce_v and_o strain_v themselves_o to_o bring_v into_o credit_n and_o estimation_n all_o the_o dream_n dotage_n railing_n and_o false_a opinion_n of_o antichrist_n and_o his_o instrument_n in_o so_o much_o that_o for_o to_o attain_v thereto_o they_o cease_v not_o to_o make_v war_n upon_o the_o poor_a faithful_a people_n desire_v with_o a_o burn_a affection_n the_o shed_n of_o their_o blood_n who_o be_v he_o then_o which_o dare_v say_v that_o such_o people_n be_v not_o very_o worthy_a and_o meet_a to_o be_v deliver_v unto_o satan_n that_o they_o may_v be_v so_o make_v drunken_a with_o the_o deadly_a poison_n of_o his_o false_a doctrine_n as_o they_o may_v never_o after_o be_v able_a to_o taste_v or_o smell_v the_o sweetness_n &_o pleasantness_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v short_a then_o in_o that_o the_o devil_n have_v so_o great_a a_o sway_n in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v a_o very_a manifest_a sign_n or_o as_o a_o man_n will_v say_v a_o banner_n display_v of_o the_o just_a vengeance_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o horrible_a and_o fearful_a fury_n upon_o all_o those_o who_o reject_v and_o persecute_v the_o gospel_n of_o his_o son_n for_o the_o ungodly_a persevere_v in_o their_o unbelief_n deserve_v to_o be_v cover_v and_o clothe_v with_o so_o great_a abomination_n see_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n can_v find_v no_o place_n among_o they_o chap._n vii_o that_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o be_v the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n and_o not_o saint_n peter_n neither_o any_o pope_n what_o so_o ever_o experience_n teach_v we_o what_o evil_n it_o bring_v we_o when_o we_o turn_v aside_o from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v it_o never_o so_o little_a in_o old_a time_n all_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v common_o call_v elder_n ancient_n bishop_n and_o they_o be_v all_o brethren_n and_o fellow_n equal_a also_o and_o of_o like_a authority_n in_o their_o ministery_n and_o this_o continue_a until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o that_o be_v choose_v in_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o pastor_n there_o for_o the_o time_n to_o be_v precedent_n and_o to_o gather_v the_o voice_n come_v at_o the_o last_o to_o be_v especial_o and_o as_o it_o be_v only_o name_v a_o bishop_n hence_o the_o devil_n begin_v to_o frame_v and_o spin_v as_o it_o be_v the_o tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n in_o the_o church_n even_o such_o as_o we_o behold_v it_o at_o this_o day_n so_o that_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n 2.3.4_o 2._o thes_n 2.3.4_o and_o son_n of_o destruction_n reveal_v be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o god_n show_v himself_o as_o though_o he_o be_v god_n for_o from_o bishop_n they_o come_v to_o metropolitanes_n who_o also_o be_v call_v archbishop_n &_o that_o under_o goodly_a show_n and_o great_a pretence_n for_o these_o metropolitanes_n be_v not_o but_o as_o it_o be_v precedent_n or_o ruler_n to_o set_v the_o other_o in_o order_n and_o to_o call_v they_o together_o when_o it_o be_v needful_a to_o have_v some_o synod_n for_o the_o affair_n and_o business_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o province_n and_o in_o good_a order_n and_o without_o confusion_n to_o redress_v and_o guide_v matter_n in_o the_o assembly_n make_v from_o metropolitanes_n they_o leap_v to_o four_o patriarch_n as_o though_o the_o whole_a christian_a common_a wealth_n aught_o to_o be_v divide_v into_o four_o part_n and_o be_v rule_v and_o govern_v by_o four_o prelate_n these_o patriarch_n be_v one_o of_o antioch_n who_o bare_a rule_n over_o syria_n one_o of_o alexandria_n who_o govern_v egypt_n &_o ethiopia_n one_o of_o constantinople_n bear_v rule_n over_o asia_n grecia_n and_o illyricum_n and_o one_o of_o rome_n rule_v all_o the_o west_n that_o be_v to_o say_v italy_n france_n spain_n &_o germany_n hereupon_o afterwards_o there_o arise_v contention_n and_o stir_n between_o these_o four_o patriarch_n touch_v their_o jurisdiction_n and_o primacy_n in_o so_o much_o that_o they_o in_o such_o sort_n set_v themselves_o one_o of_o they_o against_o a_o other_o with_o the_o hurt_n and_o loss_n indeed_o of_o the_o poor_a church_n that_o at_o the_o last_o two_o to_o wit_n that_o of_o antioch_n and_o that_o of_o alexandria_n give_v place_n and_o yield_v their_o room_n to_o the_o other_o two_o that_o be_v constantinople_n and_o rome_n the_o controversy_n between_o which_o endure_v as_o yet_o even_o unto_o this_o day_n for_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o well_o determine_v nor_o make_v plain_a which_o of_o these_o two_o ought_v to_o be_v head_n and_o universal_a bishop_n in_o some_o sort_n to_o quiet_v they_o and_o to_o make_v they_o content_v and_o to_o keep_v themselves_o within_o their_o own_o bound_n man_n have_v limit_v their_o charge_n thus_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o bear_v rule_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n to_o bear_v rule_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o west_n wherefore_o the_o la●ter_n of_o these_o two_o be_v he_o who_o the_o romish_a catholic_n make_v themselves_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n on_o earth_n and_o the_o lawful_a or_o right_a successor_n of_o saint_n peter_n but_o we_o have_v here_o two_o point_n to_o examine_v and_o sift_v the_o one_o touch_v saint_n peter_n the_o other_o touch_v the_o pope_n who_o say_v that_o he_o be_v his_o successor_n concern_v the_o first_o we_o shall_v not_o find_v in_o all_o the_o scripture_n that_o s._n peter_n be_v ordain_v at_o any_o time_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o to_o bear_v rule_n over_o it_o neither_o that_o he_o himself_o do_v at_o any_o time_n either_o pretend_v or_o usurp_v such_o a_o jurisdiction_n and_o primacy_n because_o it_o do_v not_o at_o any_o hand_n belong_v unto_o he_o but_o unto_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o as_o we_o hope_v to_o prove_v and_o manifest_o to_o show_v it_o by_o the_o reason_n follow_v the_o first_o reason_n be_v this_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o be_v call_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n ephesian_n 1._o verse_n 22._o ephesian_n 5._o verse_n 23._o 5.23_o ephes_n 1.22_o ephes_n 5.23_o saint_n peter_n then_o be_v not_o otherwise_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v a_o body_n with_o two_o head_n if_o they_o will_v reply_v and_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n indeed_o be_v the_o only_a head_n of_o the_o church_n because_o that_o he_o alone_o reign_v over_o it_o and_o that_o by_o his_o own_o only_a authority_n yet_o that_o this_o nothing_o hinder_v but_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o other_o head_n ministerial_a as_o they_o call_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v one_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o charge_n and_o office_n under_o he_o who_o shall_v be_v his_o great_a vicar_n and_o lieutenant_n general_a for_o to_o govern_v the_o church_n i_o will_v demand_v of_o they_o to_o show_v i_o when_o and_o how_o this_o ministerial_a head_n be_v ordain_v by_o jesus_n christ_n for_o if_o jesus_n christ_n be_v god_n live_v for_o ever_o 9.5_o rom._n 9.5_o what_o need_n have_v he_o of_o a_o successor_n if_o we_o have_v all_o his_o will_n in_o writing_n 18.18.28.20_o joh._n 15.15_o act._n 20.27_o matt._n 18.18.28.20_o and_o if_o he_o
this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v and_o what_o mean_v this_o upon_o this_o rock_n let_v we_o hear_v s._n augustine_n the_o church_n say_v he_o be_v found_v upon_o the_o rock_n 21._o august_n in_o johan._n tract_n 124._o ca._n 21._o of_o which_o rock_n peter_n have_v take_v his_o name_n for_o the_o rock_n be_v not_o so_o call_v of_o peter_n but_o peter_n be_v so_o name_v of_o the_o rock_n as_o christ_n have_v not_o take_v his_o name_n of_o christian_n but_o christian_n of_o christ_n therefore_o the_o lord_n say_v upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n because_o that_o peter_n have_v confess_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n he_o say_v therefore_o upon_o this_o rock_n which_o thou_o have_v confess_v i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n for_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n upon_o which_o foundation_n peter_n also_o himself_o be_v build_v mark_v what_o s._n augustine_n say_v s._n ambrose_n &_o s._n chrysostome_n understand_v this_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v christ_n &_o not_o as_o the_o pope_n do_v of_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n s._n ambrose_n say_v thus_o 2.20_o amb._n in_o epl_n ad_fw-la ephe._n ca._n 2.20_o jesus_n christ_n say_v to_o peter_n &_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o this_o confession_n of_o catholic_a faith_n i_o will_v establish_v the_o faithful_a unto_o eternal_a life_n chrysostome_n say_v also_o pentecost_n chriso_n ser._n 21._o de_fw-fr pentecost_n jesus_n christ_n say_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n he_o say_v upon_o this_o rock_n and_o not_o upon_o peter_n for_o he_o have_v found_v or_o set_v his_o church_n not_o upon_o man_n but_o upon_o the_o faith_n and_o confession_n of_o peter_n and_o what_o be_v this_o faith_n and_o confession_n thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o second_o reason_n be_v 16.19_o matth._n 16.19_o jesus_n christ_n have_v give_v the_o key_n unto_o peter_n he_o have_v therefore_o appoint_v he_o head_n of_o the_o church_n i_o deny_v the_o consequent_a for_o by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o key_n be_v understand_v not_o the_o rule_n or_o oversight_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o the_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v or_o else_o to_o pardon_v or_o not_o pardon_v sin_n as_o it_o be_v declare_v 20.23_o matt._n 18.18_o john_n 20.23_o in_o the_o 18._o chapter_n of_o the_o gospel_n after_o s._n mathewe_n and_o chap._n 20._o after_o s._n john_n now_o see_v that_o so_o it_o be_v that_o power_n to_o remit_v or_o to_o retain_v sin_n be_v give_v not_o unto_o peter_n only_o but_o equal_o unto_o all_o the_o apostle_n it_o follow_v well_o that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o key_n be_v not_o give_v to_o saint_n peter_n alone_o but_o also_o to_o all_o his_o companion_n &_o fellow_n &_o by_o consequent_a if_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n to_o who_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v give_v it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o church_n have_v so_o many_o head_n as_o it_o have_v then_o apostle_n but_o some_o will_v say_v jesus_n christ_n speak_v only_o to_o peter_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o how_o beit_n by_o the_o name_n of_o peter_n be_v understand_v the_o whole_a church_n for_o even_o as_o jesus_n christ_n be_v willing_a to_o hear_v what_o judgement_n not_o only_a peter_n but_o also_o all_o his_o fellow_n have_v of_o he_o when_o he_o demand_v of_o they_o but_o what_o say_v you_o that_o i_o be_o 16.15.16_o matt._n 16.15.16_o and_o that_o peter_n alone_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o answer_v and_o make_v this_o confession_n thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n jesus_n christ_n give_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n unto_o the_o church_n address_v his_o speech_n unto_o peter_n alone_o although_o he_o mean_v to_o speak_v as_o well_o unto_o all_o the_o rest_n 50_o augu._n in_o johan_n tract_n 50_o and_o so_o do_v saint_n augustine_n understande_v it_o for_o behold_v how_o he_o speak_v peter_n say_v he_o signify_v the_o whole_a church_n for_o if_o that_o in_o peter_n there_o be_v not_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o church_n christ_n will_v not_o have_v say_v unto_o he_o i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o again_o when_o jesus_n christ_n say_v unto_o peter_n i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o the_o key_n etc._n etc._n he_o mean_v without_o doubt_n the_o whole_a church_n and_o the_o reason_n will_v be_v mark_v why_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o person_n of_o one_o speak_v unto_o all_o that_o be_v to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v commend_v and_o set_v the_o unitye_n of_o the_o church_n even_o as_o also_o the_o ancient_a writer_n have_v mark_v &_o observe_v the_o same_o praelat_fw-la cypri_n tract_n 3._o de_fw-la simpli_fw-la praelat_fw-la s._n cyprian_n say_v thus_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o person_n of_o one_o man_n have_v give_v the_o key_n unto_o all_o thereby_o to_o denote_v and_o set_v out_o the_o unity_n of_o all_o the_o other_o be_v the_o same_o in_o deed_n that_o peter_n be_v fellow_n in_o equal_a honour_n and_o in_o equal_a power_n but_o jesus_n begin_v with_o one_o man_n to_o the_o end_n to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n be_v one_o and_o augustine_n 11._o august_n in_o johan._n tract_n 11._o so_o it_o be_v say_v he_o that_o all_o be_v ask_v peter_n alone_o answer_v he_o thou_o be_v christ_n etc._n etc._n &_o to_o he_o be_v it_o say_v i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n as_o though_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o lose_v have_v be_v give_v unto_o he_o alone_o but_o as_o he_o answer_v for_o all_o so_o he_o receive_v the_o key_n together_o with_o all_o bearing_z as_o it_o be_v the_o person_n of_o unity_n wherefore_o he_o alone_o be_v name_v for_o all_o because_o there_o be_v unity_n among_o all_o 3_o the_o three_o reason_n be_v 21.16_o joh._n 21.16_o jesus_n christ_n command_v peter_n above_o all_o the_o rest_n yea_o and_o the_o three_o time_n to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n he_o then_o do_v constitute_v and_o make_v he_o a_o universal_a bishop_n and_o head_n of_o all_o church_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o consequent_a be_v false_a for_o there_o be_v a_o very_a great_a not_o only_a difference_n but_o contraritie_n between_o these_o two_o to_o have_v charge_n to_o feed_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o have_v a_o most_o high_a empire_n &_o universal_a rule_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n beside_o if_o to_o feed_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o to_o minister_v &_o give_v unto_o they_o the_o spiritual_a food_n of_o their_o soul_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n 16.15_o matt._n 28.19_o mark_n 16.15_o as_o it_o be_v indeed_o and_o see_v that_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a and_o plain_a that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v give_v this_o commission_n to_o all_o his_o apostle_n general_o it_o follow_v very_o well_o that_o he_o have_v not_o give_v it_o to_o peter_n alone_o and_o indeed_o peter_n himself_o do_v well_o confess_v the_o same_o etc._n 1._o peter_n 1.5_o etc._n etc._n when_o he_o exhort_v his_o fellow_n minister_n to_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o and_o basil_n confirm_v the_o same_o say_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o teach_v we_o this_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o be_v the_o only_a head_n of_o the_o church_n who_o do_v constitute_v &_o appoint_v peter_n the_o pastor_n of_o his_o church_n after_o he_o for_o he_o say_v peter_n love_v thou_o i_o feed_v my_o sheep_n and_o consequent_o he_o have_v give_v this_o very_a same_o power_n to_o all_o pastor_n &_o teacher_n and_o hereof_o this_o be_v a_o certain_a sign_n and_o sure_a token_n that_o all_o bind_v and_o lose_v without_o any_o difference_n as_o well_o as_o he_o the_o four_o reason_n s._n peter_n be_v diverse_a time_n in_o the_o scripture_n name_v the_o first_o among_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o he_o be_v choose_v to_o have_v rule_n above_o the_o other_o his_o fellow_n yea_o above_o or_o over_o the_o whole_a church_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o this_o argument_n be_v frivolous_a and_o vain_a yea_o worthy_a to_o be_v mock_v and_o hiss_v at_o for_o be_v it_o that_o we_o confess_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a as_o it_o be_v among_o a_o few_o people_n that_o be_v to_o say_v among_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n yet_o very_o far_o fetch_v be_v this_o that_o it_o shall_v therefore_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o or_o chief_a over_o all_o christian_n or_o that_o he_o do_v bear_v rule_n over_o all_o the_o world_n second_o if_o because_o that_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o first_o name_v he_o be_v therefore_o the_o first_o &_o chief_a
among_o the_o apostle_n we_o must_v then_o say_v by_o the_o contrary_a that_o the_o virgin_n marie_n be_v the_o last_v and_o least_o of_o all_o woman_n because_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n 1.13.14_o act._n 1.13.14_o where_o also_o s._n peter_n be_v set_v the_o first_o in_o the_o catalogue_n or_o number_n she_o be_v set_v the_o last_o after_o other_o which_o matter_n the_o romish_a catholic_n will_v not_o at_o any_o hand_n say_v or_o affirm_v which_o if_o they_o shall_v it_o will_v be_v find_v in_o deed_n a_o very_a absurd_a thing_n three_o we_o read_v in_o many_o place_n that_o s._n peter_n be_v not_o name_v first_o and_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o 2.9_o gal._n 2.9_o place_v james_n before_o he_o james_n then_o by_o this_o reason_n shall_v have_v authority_n over_o peter_n because_o he_o be_v name_v before_o he_o beside_o in_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o speech_n &_o advice_n of_o james_n which_o be_v have_v after_o that_o peter_n have_v give_v he_o etc._n act._n 15.13_o etc._n etc._n have_v such_o weight_n with_o it_o that_o all_o consent_v and_o agree_v to_o his_o judgement_n and_o thus_o much_o concern_v the_o first_o point_n let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o other_o which_o concern_v the_o pope_n who_o say_v that_o he_o be_v saint_n peter_n successor_n and_o so_o by_o consequent_a the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n first_o if_o it_o manifest_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v heretofore_o that_o saint_n peter_n be_v never_o establish_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o never_o have_v any_o such_o pre-eminence_n and_o authority_n attribute_v unto_o he_o by_o what_o title_n or_o right_a can_v or_o will_v the_o pope_n who_o say_v that_o he_o be_v his_o successor_n pretend_v at_o this_o day_n any_o such_o lordship_n rule_n and_o authority_n let_v we_o also_o on_o the_o other_o side_n well_o mark_v this_o s._n peter_n die_v as_o they_o say_v under_o nero_n and_o there_o succeed_v he_o lucius_z cletus_n &_o clemens_n in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n john_n who_o live_v under_o domitian_n and_o even_o unto_o trajan_n his_o day_n now_o if_o they_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n which_o succeed_v s._n peter_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n to_o who_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n ought_v to_o be_v subject_a they_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v drive_v to_o confess_v that_o s._n john_n be_v subject_a to_o lucius_n to_o cletus_n and_o to_o clemens_n moreover_o if_o s._n peter_n successor_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n clemens_n who_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o three_o place_n as_o they_o say_v be_v so_o likewise_o but_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o he_o himself_o say_v in_o a_o epistle_n which_o as_o some_o say_v he_o write_v to_o james_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n 2._o tom._n 1._o council_n pag._n 135._o col_fw-fr 2._o the_o title_n or_o inscription_n be_v this_o clemens_n to_o james_n the_o lord_n brother_n bishop_n of_o bishop_n governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o all_o other_o church_n which_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n be_v throughout_o all_o the_o world_n if_o clemens_n be_v the_o universal_a bishop_n why_o do_v he_o spoil_v himself_o of_o his_o own_o title_n to_o attribute_v ascribe_v and_o give_v the_o same_o unto_o james_n to_o who_o they_o do_v not_o belong_v furthermore_o who_o be_v he_o that_o have_v lift_v up_o the_o pope_n into_o this_o goodly_a degree_n of_o honour_n be_v it_o jesus_n christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n no_o in_o deed_n for_o we_o read_v that_o bonifacius_n the_o three_o of_o that_o name_n bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v by_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n ordain_v the_o first_o sovereign_n or_o chief_a of_o all_o christendom_n and_o the_o chuuch_n of_o rome_n establish_a head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n &_o this_o be_v about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n six_o hundred_o and_o four_o this_o phocas_n as_o the_o history_n writer_n rehearse_v and_o record_v be_v a_o traitor_n and_o a_o unfaithful_a murderer_n of_o the_o emperor_n mauritius_n his_o master_n for_o as_o the_o say_v mauritius_n at_o a_o certain_a time_n show_v himself_o over_o severe_a and_o rigorous_a against_o his_o soldier_n they_o be_v give_v to_o debate_n and_o contention_n choose_v phocas_n for_o emperor_n who_o in_o calcedonia_n immediate_o cause_v to_o be_v cut_v off_o the_o forename_a mauritius_n his_o own_o head_n his_o arm_n also_o and_o his_o three_o son_n name_v theodorus_n tiberius_n and_o constantine_n but_o he_o receive_v his_o payment_n and_o reward_n for_o it_o afterward_o for_o have_v reign_v eight_o year_n he_o be_v at_o the_o last_o slay_v by_o the_o common_a people_n in_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 612._o behold_v and_o mark_v by_o who_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v establish_v and_o the_o roman_a bishop_n make_v a_o universal_a bishop_n there_o be_v before_o not_o so_o much_o as_o any_o news_n of_o it_o for_o as_o concern_v a_o certain_a edict_n or_o decree_n which_o they_o allege_v by_o which_o constantine_n the_o great_a a_o christian_a emperor_n give_v unto_o silvester_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 317._o spiritual_a domination_n and_o government_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n also_o the_o jewel_n and_o kingly_a ornament_n yea_o the_o empire_n itself_o and_o politic_a government_n over_o all_o the_o west_n part_n it_o be_v a_o write_v find_v and_o forge_v for_o and_o at_o their_o pleasure_n full_a of_o lying_n also_o and_o falshoode_n which_o may_v be_v easy_o prove_v by_o these_o reason_n there_o be_v none_o of_o all_o the_o approve_a historiographer_n during_o certain_a age_n which_o make_v mention_v thereof_o after_o any_o sort_n as_o eusebius_n eutropius_n ruffinus_n socrates_n theodoretus_n beda_n euagrius_n paulus_n diaconus_fw-la zonaras_n nicephorus_n orosius_n either_o other_o the_o like_a yea_o they_o which_o have_v write_v the_o life_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o pope_n have_v not_o any_o whit_n at_o all_o speak_v thereof_o no_o more_o have_v the_o ancient_a doctor_n athanasius_n basilius_n saint_n ambrose_n gregory_n nissenus_n gregorius_n nazianzenus_n optatus_n milenitanus_n saint_n augustine_n chrysostome_n which_o be_v more_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o have_v not_o say_v any_o thing_n thereof_o no_o not_o in_o counsel_n when_o they_o have_v take_v upon_o they_o the_o care_n and_o charge_n to_o maintain_v their_o primacy_n which_o will_v notwithstanding_o have_v be_v a_o good_a buckler_n and_o shield_n of_o defence_n for_o they_o if_o constantine_n give_v to_o the_o roman_a bishop_n the_o primacy_n over_o constantinople_n antioch_n alexandria_n jerusalem_n and_o all_o other_o church_n what_o reason_n have_v he_o to_o suffer_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a whereat_o he_o himself_o be_v present_a that_o the_o contrary_n shall_v there_o be_v determine_v and_o conclude_v 342._o council_n nic._n can._n 6._o &_o habetur_fw-la tom_n 1._o council_n pag._n 342._o for_o in_o that_o council_n it_o be_v conclude_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v not_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n or_o of_o antioch_n or_o of_o jerusalem_n if_o the_o foresay_a emperor_n ordain_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v hold_v and_o take_v for_o the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n wherefore_o then_o do_v bonifacius_n demand_v and_o seek_v the_o same_o of_o phocas_n whereas_o he_o shall_v rather_o have_v require_v to_o have_v keep_v the_o same_o to_o himself_o and_o his_o successor_n which_o be_v long_o before_o grant_v by_o constantine_n to_o his_o predecessor_n with_o what_o conscience_n will_v constantine_n give_v unto_o silvester_n lordship_n and_o government_n over_o the_o church_n and_o the_o empire_n he_o himself_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o therefore_o by_o consequent_a know_v very_o well_o that_o there_o be_v a_o distinction_n and_o difference_n between_o the_o office_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o charge_n and_o duty_n of_o magistrate_n eusebius_n eusebius_n even_o as_o eusebius_n witness_v of_o he_o that_o he_o be_v accustom_v to_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v and_o commit_v the_o inward_a charge_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o elder_n &_o minister_n but_o the_o outward_a to_o he_o if_o we_o will_v consider_v silvester_n with_o what_o conscience_n also_o can_v he_o accept_v the_o say_a donation_n or_o gift_n the_o use_n whereof_o as_o he_o well_o enough_o know_v jesus_n christ_n have_v forbid_v he_o 22.21_o luk._n 22.25_o matt._n 22.21_o for_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o this_o sentence_n the_o king_n of_o the_o nation_n bear_v rule_v etc._n etc._n but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o amongst_o you_o also_o give_v unto_o caesar_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v
not_o be_v call_v the_o prince_n or_o chief_a of_o priest_n or_o the_o high_a priest_n or_o any_o such_o other_o like_o thing_n but_o only_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o seat_n and_o that_o he_o himself_o shall_v not_o be_v call_v universal_a bishop_n which_o last_o clause_n peter_n grabbe_n the_o compiler_n or_o gatherer_n of_o the_o tome_n of_o the_o council_n have_v leave_v out_o either_o by_o deceit_n or_o negligence_n i_o know_v not_o whither_o you_o see_v testimony_n enough_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o most_o approve_a old_a doctor_n and_o such_o as_o be_v best_a worthy_a of_o credit_n by_o which_o you_o may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o this_o rule_n or_o authority_n over_o all_o church_n be_v not_o in_o their_o time_n attribute_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o church_n themselves_o have_v not_o any_o superiority_n or_o authority_n one_o of_o they_o over_o a_o other_o but_o that_o they_o be_v all_o associate_v and_o unite_v together_o that_o some_o obtain_v not_o neither_o more_o or_o less_o power_n then_o othersome_a yea_o we_o read_v that_o when_o the_o romish_a bishop_n will_v sometime_o have_v usurp_v more_o authority_n than_o do_v appertain_v unto_o he_o other_o bishop_n do_v strong_o and_o steadfast_o resist_v he_o which_o appear_v by_o the_o history_n follow_v that_o socrates_n a_o ecclesiastical_a historiographer_n write_v in_o his_o second_o book_n and_o fifteen_o chapter_n and_o sozomenus_n in_o his_o third_o book_n and_o eight_o chapter_n a_o certain_a man_n name_v athanasius_n &_o one_o paulinus_n be_v depose_v from_o their_o charge_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o asia_n assemble_v and_o meet_v together_o with_o their_o metropolitan_a will_v needs_o complain_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o easy_o give_v they_o letter_n by_o which_o he_o do_v place_v they_o again_o in_o their_o first_o office_n and_o do_v greevous_o reprove_v and_o chide_v they_o who_o have_v put_v they_o therefrom_o but_o the_o bishop_n of_o asia_n take_v this_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o they_o obtain_v of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n that_o letter_n shall_v be_v write_v to_o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o which_o there_o shall_v be_v declare_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o do_v attribute_n and_o take_v unto_o himself_o a_o authority_n which_o do_v not_o at_o any_o hand_n belong_v unto_o he_o and_o that_o in_o so_o do_v he_o offer_v great_a wrong_n to_o other_o church_n and_o other_o bishop_n and_o there_o be_v add_v to_o the_o letter_n that_o he_o shall_v no_o more_o meddle_v with_o they_o who_o they_o have_v depose_v they_o they_o meddle_v with_o those_o which_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o which_o be_v join_v with_o he_o therein_o to_o which_o purpose_n they_o allege_v the_o example_n of_o novatus_fw-la which_o be_v as_o yet_o very_o fresh_a and_o new_a for_o when_o this_o novatus_fw-la be_v reject_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n none_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o metropolitanes_n and_o bishop_n of_o other_o province_n do_v gainsay_v the_o same_o neither_o any_o manner_n of_o way_n intermedle_v therein_o furthermore_o if_o that_o which_o be_v maintain_v and_o practise_v at_o this_o day_n among_o the_o romish_a catholic_n touch_v the_o large_a jurisdiction_n &_o sovereignty_n of_o their_o pope_n be_v in_o force_n by_o god_n law_n as_o they_o will_v persuade_v the_o simple_a people_n thereof_o shall_v not_o then_o all_o the_o foresay_a bishop_n all_z other_o together_o with_o their_o counsel_n and_o church_n which_o have_v not_o at_o any_o time_n confess_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o their_o head_n be_v very_o grievous_o censure_v or_o punish_v and_o worthy_a of_o a_o very_a severe_a and_o sharp_a reprehension_n it_o be_v true_a that_o man_n may_v find_v that_o some_o among_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v sometime_o call_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n high_a priest_n &_o pope_n but_o they_o do_v heretofore_o call_v after_o the_o same_o sort_n all_o bishop_n for_o as_o touch_v the_o name_n high_a priest_n 7._o theodo_fw-la lib._n 2._o cap._n 7._o theodoretus_n in_o his_o second_o book_n &_o chap._n 7._o speak_v on_o this_o manner_n that_o two_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o high_a priest_n be_v assemble_v together_o in_o sardis_n and_o athanasius_n in_o his_o first_o oration_n against_o the_o arrian_n arrianos_fw-la athanasius_n oratio_fw-la 1._o contra_fw-la arrianos_fw-la do_v not_o only_o call_v julius_n and_o liberius_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n high_a priest_n but_o also_o he_o call_v by_o the_o very_a same_o name_n the_o bishop_n of_o grecia_n dacia_n cappadocia_n africa_n 26._o ruffin_n lib._n 2_o cap._n 26._o italy_n sicilia_n and_o armenia_n ruffinus_n also_o in_o the_o second_o book_n &_o six_o and_o twenty_o chapter_n call_v athanasius_n the_o great_a high_a priest_n as_o concern_v the_o name_n pope_n we_o will_v speak_v thereof_o by_o god_n grace_n and_o aid_n hereafter_o in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n moreover_o let_v we_o consider_v by_o what_o token_n and_o mark_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n say_v that_o he_o be_v saint_n peter_n successor_n it_o be_v say_v the_o romish_a catholic_n because_o that_o saint_n peter_n have_v his_o seat_n and_o chair_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v there_o the_o pastor_n and_o have_v bear_v rule_n there_o a_o long_a time_n and_o that_o after_o he_o there_o come_v in_o order_n his_o successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o same_o authority_n which_o he_o have_v before_o but_o touch_v the_o first_o it_o be_v uncerteine_a whether_o saint_n peter_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o no_o at_o the_o least_o whether_o he_o bare_a rule_n there_o and_o hold_v the_o seat_n they_o be_v not_o able_a plain_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o neither_o to_o approve_v it_o as_o truth_n at_o what_o time_n it_o be_v neither_o under_o what_o emperor_n neither_o how_o long_o because_o that_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o bring_v so_o much_o as_o one_o only_a probable_a conjecture_n 14._o caluin_n li._n 4._o instit_fw-la cap._n 6._o sect_n 14._o but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a as_o caluine_n have_v well_o &_o sufficient_o declare_v in_o his_o institution_n second_o if_o s._n peter_n abode_n at_o rome_n have_v give_v this_o authority_n to_o the_o romish_n bishop_n to_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o universal_a bishop_n from_z whence_o come_v it_o 13._o council_n nic._n can._n 6._o council_n antioch_n can._n 13._o that_o the_o counsel_n have_v limit_v to_o all_o the_o patriarch_n who_o be_v many_o &_o diverse_a yea_o even_o after_o that_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o four_o their_o several_a charge_n make_v they_o metropolitanes_n every_o one_o in_o his_o own_o province_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o more_o authority_n over_o other_o than_o other_o over_o he_o for_o at_o that_o time_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v very_o well_o have_v allege_v s._n peter_n seat_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n &_o counsel_n will_v very_o well_o have_v confess_v and_o allow_v the_o same_o if_o it_o have_v be_v true_a and_o if_o the_o same_o can_v right_o have_v give_v the_o title_n of_o primacy_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n on_o the_o other_o side_n what_o a_o argument_n be_v this_o s._n peter_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n &_o there_o suffer_v martyrdom_n therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o this_o church_n be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o be_v the_o universal_a and_o general_a head_n of_o all_o christendom_n very_o if_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o question_n be_v to_o establish_v and_o set_v up_o a_o primacy_n it_o ought_v rather_o to_o be_v place_v at_o jerusalem_n than_o at_o rome_n for_o saint_n peter_n preach_v there_o 2.12_o act._n 2.14_o act._n 2.12_o yea_o the_o first_o after_o christ_n ascension_n where_o he_o together_o with_o his_o fellow_n and_o brethren_n build_v up_o the_o church_n 4.3_o act._n 4.3_o do_v great_a miracle_n be_v imprison_v 5.18_o act._n 5.18_o and_o sundry_a time_n persecute_v the_o prophet_n likewise_o preach_v there_o and_o all_o the_o apostle_n yea_o which_o be_v more_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o 18.20_o joh._n 2.13_o &_o 7.14_o &_o 8.2_o etc._n etc._n 18.20_o die_v there_o and_o rose_n again_o and_o from_o thence_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n there_o also_o be_v the_o first_o synod_n that_o ever_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n assemble_v of_o all_o the_o apostle_n there_o also_o jesus_n christ_n send_v down_o his_o holy_a spirit_n upon_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n etc._n act._n 15.6_o etc._n etc._n act._n 2.1_o etc._n etc._n and_o to_o be_v short_a from_o thence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n shall_v come_v forth_o to_o be_v spread_v abroad_o throughout_o all_o the_o world_n 4.2_o isai_n 2.3_o michah_n 4.2_o even_o as_o the_o prophet_n have_v before_o tell_v which_o
for_o which_o the_o apostle_n have_v spread_v abroad_o all_o the_o doctrine_n with_o their_o blood_n where_o saint_n peter_n suffer_v such_o a_o death_n as_o the_o lord_n himself_o do_v where_o paul_n be_v crown_v with_o martyrdom_n where_o john_n the_o apostle_n be_v put_v into_o burn_v or_o flame_a oil_n &_o yet_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o same_o without_o any_o hurt_n or_o blister_n and_o afterwards_o send_v into_o exile_n let_v we_o look_v upon_o that_o which_o she_o learn_v and_o that_o which_o she_o teach_v and_o what_o concord_n and_o agreement_n she_o have_v have_v with_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n she_o have_v acknowledge_v confess_v and_o allow_v one_o only_a god_n the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n &_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n she_o have_v believe_v also_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n she_o have_v receive_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n with_o the_o write_n as_o well_o of_o the_o evangelist_n as_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o from_o thence_o she_o draw_v or_o fetch_v faith_n she_o mark_v she_o with_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o she_o clothe_v they_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n she_o nourish_v they_o with_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o supper_n she_o exhort_v by_o martrydome_n and_o she_o receive_v not_o any_o person_n against_o such_o instruction_n behold_v tertullian_n his_o word_n wherefore_o we_o have_v not_o forsake_v this_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o new_a and_o particular_a romish_a church_n which_o since_o have_v lift_v up_o herself_o which_o advouch_v the_o pope_n for_o her_o head_n and_o allow_v he_o for_o the_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n on_o earth_n which_o worship_v he_o and_o obey_v his_o law_n against_o the_o law_n of_o god._n for_o she_o have_v degenerate_v and_o go_v out_o of_o kind_n and_o have_v lose_v all_o her_o authority_n even_o as_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o say_a church_n have_v sometime_o foretell_v write_v to_o saint_n cyprian_n say_v 1.8_o cyprian_a lib._n 2._o epist_n 7._o rom._n 1.8_o that_o the_o praise_n that_o saint_n paul_n give_v to_o that_o church_n to_o wit_n that_o their_o faith_n be_v spread_v abroad_o and_o publish_v throughout_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v turn_v to_o their_o shame_n &_o dispraise_v if_o they_o go_v out_o of_o kind_n &_o become_v bastard_n and_o if_o they_o continue_v not_o to_o be_v heir_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o by_o this_o departure_n from_o she_o we_o have_v declare_v the_o obedience_n which_o we_o owe_v unto_o god_n who_o have_v command_v we_o to_o do_v so_o say_v go_v out_o of_o babylon_n my_o people_n that_o you_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o that_o you_o receive_v not_o of_o her_o plague_n and_o have_v receive_v the_o counsel_n of_o saint_n ambrose_n who_o say_v if_o there_o be_v any_o church_n which_o refuse_v the_o faith_n and_o keep_v not_o the_o foundation_n or_o groundworke_n of_o the_o apostle_n preach_v we_o must_v leave_v she_o lest_o she_o bring_v with_o her_o the_o infection_n of_o error_n and_o unbelief_n this_o he_o have_v write_v upon_o the_o nine_o chapter_n of_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o saint_n luke_n but_o some_o will_v say_v you_o account_v the_o reform_a church_n of_o germany_n for_o the_o true_a church_n though_o you_o find_v there_o many_o thing_n to_o be_v amend_v as_o concern_v the_o supper_n itself_o and_o some_o other_o ceremony_n why_o they_o make_v you_o not_o the_o like_a account_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o answer_n that_o it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o there_o be_v some_o controversy_n between_o the_o german_n and_o we_o touch_v some_o point_n of_o religion_n but_o it_o be_v not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o essential_a or_o substantial_a point_n thereof_o i_o call_v they_o essential_a or_o substantial_a point_n that_o be_v so_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o religion_n that_o if_o man_n err_v in_o one_o point_n the_o same_o can_v subsiste_v or_o stand_v for_o even_o in_o that_o which_o concern_v the_o holy_a supper_n we_o all_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o difference_n be_v not_o but_o in_o that_o consubstantiation_n which_o they_o maintain_v which_o be_v not_o of_o such_o great_a importance_n and_o weight_n as_o transubstantiation_n which_o the_o romish_n pretend_v which_o even_o in_o that_o one_o point_n overthrow_v and_o utter_o bring_v to_o nothing_o godliness_n put_v a_o idol_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n &_o make_v of_o the_o creature_n a_o creator_n &_o a_o christ_n subject_n to_o corruption_n rase_v from_o the_o foundation_n &_o turn_v topsy_n turuie_o as_o we_o say_v that_o which_o concern_v the_o propriety_n the_o nature_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o body_n all_o which_o abomination_n and_o idolatry_n the_o german_n that_o be_v reform_v do_v detest_v and_o set_v themselves_o against_o as_o well_o as_o we_o but_o if_o some_o that_o be_v willing_a to_o make_v divorce_n as_o it_o be_v and_o separation_n between_o the_o german_n and_o we_o will_v allege_v that_o the_o foresay_a german_n have_v not_o the_o like_a opinion_n of_o we_o that_o we_o have_v of_o they_o and_o that_o they_o hold_v and_o account_v we_o for_o heretic_n as_o may_v be_v see_v and_o prove_v by_o certain_a write_n which_o they_o have_v set_v abroad_o and_o publish_v we_o answer_v that_o the_o passion_n affection_n and_o heat_n of_o some_o particular_a person_n who_o have_v write_v somewhat_o more_o free_o they_o they_o shall_v ought_v not_o so_o to_o be_v regard_v and_o esteem_v that_o theruppon_o they_o will_v make_v a_o general_a conclusion_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o so_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o division_n between_o all_o they_o and_o us._n for_o albeit_o there_o be_v some_o diversity_n between_o they_o &_o we_o in_o this_o point_n touch_v the_o supper_n and_o in_o some_o certain_a ceremony_n yet_o unity_n do_v not_o therefore_o cease_v to_o continue_v and_o remain_v always_o amongst_o us._n 22._o socrat._n lib._n 5_o cap._n 22._o socrates_n who_o write_v the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n say_v thus_o there_o be_v not_o any_o religion_n which_o observe_v the_o same_o ceremony_n though_o it_o do_v receive_v and_o admit_v one_o and_o the_o self_n doctrine_n touch_v ceremony_n and_o indeed_o they_o which_o have_v the_o same_o faith_n sometime_o differ_v amongst_o themselves_o touch_v some_o ceremony_n and_o observation_n irenaeus_n write_v to_o victor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 26._o euseb_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 26._o rehearse_v that_o there_o be_v great_a diversity_n in_o the_o church_n touch_v fast_v and_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o feast_n of_o easter_n afterward_o he_o add_v notwithstanding_o though_o there_o be_v diversity_n amongst_o all_o these_o touch_v ceremony_n yet_o so_o it_o be_v that_o they_o do_v always_o agree_v with_o we_o and_o the_o discord_n or_o difference_n about_o fast_v do_v not_o break_v the_o concord_n or_o unity_n of_o faith_n so_o then_o follow_v these_o place_n we_o affirm_v that_o we_o leave_v not_o of_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o company_n of_o the_o reform_a german_n for_o the_o true_a church_n although_o that_o we_o be_v not_o in_o every_o point_n and_o thorough_o agree_v with_o they_o touch_v some_o matter_n consider_v in_o the_o supper_n and_o some_o ceremony_n observe_v amongst_o they_o and_o the_o rule_n of_o charity_n teach_v we_o this_o as_o saint_n paul_n have_v give_v we_o a_o good_a example_n thereof_o 1.2_o 1._o cor._n 1.2_o 2._o cor._n 1.1_o galat._n 1.2_o when_o he_o call_v the_o corinthian_n and_o the_o galathian_o saint_n and_o faithful_a one_o and_o give_v unto_o they_o in_o general_a the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n although_o there_o be_v amongst_o they_o great_a and_o grievous_a fault_n as_o well_o in_o ignorance_n of_o the_o doctrine_n as_o in_o their_o own_o life_n and_o manner_n this_o be_v that_o also_o which_o he_o have_v set_v forth_o in_o a_o other_o place_n say_v that_o all_o they_o which_o hold_v and_o keep_v the_o foundation_n do_v not_o always_o build_v gold_n and_o silver_n and_o precious_a stone_n but_o hay_n &_o stubble_n but_o some_o say_v why_o follow_v you_o not_o the_o same_o rule_n on_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o answer_v that_o in_o the_o ceremony_n &_o service_n of_o the_o romishe_a church_n the_o purity_n of_o religion_n be_v not_o there_o observe_v &_o keep_v but_o the_o whole_a service_n of_o god_n be_v amongst_o they_o corrupt_v and_o falsify_v and_o therefore_o can_v not_o with_o out_o offend_a god_n apply_v or_o frame_v ourselves_o unto_o they_o and_o saint_n augustine_n have_v give_v we_o this_o lesson_n teach_v we_o how_o far_o we_o may_v communicate_v in_o the_o ceremony_n and_o service_n of_o other_o church_n januarium_fw-la
august_n ad_fw-la januarium_fw-la there_o be_v no_o better_a rule_n in_o this_o behalf_n say_v he_o than_o a_o wise_a and_o sober_a christian_a himself_o which_o will_v frame_v himself_o to_o that_o custom_n which_o he_o shall_v see_v use_v in_o that_o church_n wherein_o he_o live_v for_o that_o which_o be_v not_o establish_v against_o faith_n or_o against_o good_a manner_n must_v be_v hold_v for_o indifferent_a but_o the_o church_n allow_v not_o that_o which_o be_v against_o faith_n and_o good_a life_n yea_o she_o dissemble_v it_o not_o neither_o do_v it_o to_o be_v short_a then_o for_o so_o much_o as_o we_o can_v be_v present_a at_o the_o service_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n without_o defile_v ourselves_o in_o their_o manifest_a idolatry_n you_o may_v see_v wherefore_o we_o do_v whole_o and_o altogether_o renounce_v and_o forsake_v the_o same_o and_o in_o this_o deed_n of_o we_o we_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o prophet_n for_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n in_o the_o day_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la circumcision_n be_v administer_v and_o there_o they_o offer_v sacrifice_n yea_o the_o law_n be_v esteem_v there_o among_o they_o as_o holy_a and_o which_o be_v more_o god_n himself_o be_v call_v upon_o and_o pray_v to_o there_o yet_o notwithstanding_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o superstition_n and_o ceremony_n which_o man_n have_v devise_v and_o set_v up_o against_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n all_o that_o service_n be_v reject_v and_o condemn_v neither_o can_v any_o man_n show_v that_o elijah_n or_o any_o other_o whether_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n or_o of_o any_o other_o call_v do_v at_o any_o time_n worship_n or_o offer_v up_o sacrifice_n in_o bethell_n but_o see_v more_o large_o touch_v this_o matter_n in_o that_o which_o m._n caluine_n have_v write_v thereof_o in_o the_o four_o book_n of_o his_o institution_n chap._n 2._o sect_n 1.2.3.4.5_o etc._n caluin_n lib._n 4_o instit_fw-la ca._n 2._o sect_n 1.2.3.4.5_o etc._n etc._n etc._n etc._n moreover_o when_o we_o do_v thus_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o romish_a church_n we_o break_v not_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n because_o that_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n there_o be_v no_o true_a unity_n for_o first_o of_o all_o it_o be_v not_o at_o unity_n in_o itself_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o several_a sect_n and_o rule_n which_o be_v amongst_o they_o one_o say_v i_o be_o of_o the_o order_n of_o s._n augustine_n a_o other_o i_o be_o of_o saint_n dominicke_n his_o order_n and_o other_o i_o be_o of_o s._n francis_n a_o other_o i_o be_o a_o jesuite_n contrary_a to_o that_o which_o s._n paul_n write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n 1.11.12.13_o 1._o cor._n 1.11.12.13_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n second_o that_o church_n be_v not_o unite_v with_o god_n which_o union_n or_o unity_n be_v necessary_o join_v with_o the_o former_a 1.3_o 1._o joh._n 1.3_o as_o s._n john_n declare_v it_o and_o that_o this_o be_v true_a that_o it_o have_v not_o any_o union_n or_o fellowship_n with_o god_n it_o be_v sufficient_o plain_a by_o this_o only_a reason_n that_o he_o that_o have_v union_n or_o fellowship_n with_o god_n aught_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o by_o faith_n to_o be_v assure_v hereof_o that_o god_n dwell_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o god_n even_o as_o the_o scripture_n teach_v us._n but_o the_o faith_n of_o papist_n be_v this_o that_o we_o must_v always_o doubt_v whether_o we_o be_v in_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n wherefore_o they_o can_v not_o have_v union_n or_o fellowship_n with_o he_o furthermore_o this_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v that_o there_o be_v no_o union_n or_o agreement_n between_o the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o unite_a with_o he_o which_o be_v consider_v to_o what_o end_n and_o purpose_n will_v they_o have_v we_o to_o remain_v and_o abide_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o romish_n church_n see_v there_o be_v not_o in_o it_o any_o unity_n i_o mean_v holy_a unity_n and_o such_o as_o agree_v well_o to_o good_a christian_n and_o the_o true_a member_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o will_v object_v further_o you_o hold_v indeed_o that_o baptism_n minister_v in_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v true_a baptism_n why_o then_o do_v you_o not_o hold_v this_o church_n for_o the_o true_a church_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o reason_n be_v very_o weak_a for_o we_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o assembly_n of_o heretic_n for_o the_o true_a church_n although_o we_o cease_v not_o to_o allow_v the_o baptism_n minister_v amongst_o they_o for_o true_a and_o profitable_a even_o as_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n decree_v the_o same_o because_o that_o baptism_n be_v always_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o of_o heretic_n although_o it_o be_v minister_v by_o heretic_n who_o have_v notwithstanding_o some_o vocation_n and_o allowance_n of_o the_o people_n wherein_o let_v we_o hear_v saint_n augustine_n 10._o august_n lib._n 3_o cont_n donatist_n cap._n 10._o the_o water_n say_v he_o over_o which_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v call_v upon_o be_v not_o bastardly_a for_o neither_o the_o creature_n nor_o the_o name_n be_v profane_a or_o bastardly_a wherefore_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n be_v sanctify_v and_o hallow_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v holy_a among_o the_o adulterous_a and_o in_o the_o adulterous_a although_o they_o themselves_o be_v shameless_a and_o unclean_a and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n 6._o aug._n count_n crescent_n li._n 3._o cap._n 6._o the_o baptism_n be_v such_o as_o be_v he_o by_o who_o virtue_n it_o be_v administer_v and_o not_o such_o as_o he_o by_o who_o hand_n it_o be_v administer_v 36._o august_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la ad_fw-la pet._n cap._n 36._o also_o because_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o in_o what_o so_o ever_o place_n where_o baptism_n be_v administer_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v but_o once_o minister_v this_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v that_o though_o it_o be_v administer_v by_o heretic_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v reverent_o receive_v and_o at_o no_o hand_n reiterated_a wherefore_o we_o esteem_v and_o take_v the_o baptism_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n for_o true_a baptism_n because_o it_o be_v minister_v not_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n &_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o confess_v that_o the_o infant_n which_o receive_v it_o be_v true_o baptize_v even_o as_o they_o which_o be_v circumcise_v in_o the_o time_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la and_o of_o caiaphas_n be_v hold_v for_o true_a circumcise_a person_n although_o at_o that_o time_n the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v almost_o altogether_o pervert_v and_o corrupt_v but_o yet_o this_o remain_v that_o albeit_o we_o have_v receive_v baptism_n in_o the_o popish_a assembly_n and_o that_o we_o hold_v the_o same_o for_o true_a baptism_n yet_o we_o be_v far_o off_o from_o hold_v or_o account_v that_o assembly_n for_o the_o true_a church_n caluine_n have_v sufficient_o answer_v this_o difficulty_n or_o doubt_n who_o word_n i_o will_v bring_v in_o place_n here_o 11.12_o caluin_n lib._n 4_o inst_z cap._n 2._o sect_n 11.12_o content_v myself_o therewith_o as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la say_v he_o there_o be_v certain_a prerogative_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n which_o remain_v amongst_o the_o jew_n although_o at_o that_o time_n the_o service_n of_o god_n be_v very_o much_o corrupt_v so_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o the_o papist_n have_v at_o this_o day_n some_o step_n &_o path_n of_o the_o dissipation_n or_o scatter_v of_o the_o church_n which_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n have_v remain_v with_o they_o for_o as_o circumcision_n can_v not_o be_v so_o defile_v by_o the_o unclean_a hand_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o that_o it_o be_v always_o a_o sign_n and_o a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n for_o which_o cause_n god_n call_v the_o infant_n or_o child_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o this_o people_n his_o which_o can_v not_o any_o manner_n of_o way_n belong_v unto_o he_o but_o by_o a_o certain_a special_a blessing_n and_o privilege_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n also_o because_o he_o have_v once_o place_v his_o covenant_n in_o france_n in_o italy_n in_o germany_n and_o other_o country_n although_o that_o all_o that_o be_v afterward_o oppress_v by_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antechrist_n yet_o to_o the_o end_n that_o his_o covenant_n may_v remain_v amongst_o they_o inviolable_a and_o unbroken_a it_o have_v please_v he_o that_o baptism_n shall_v there_o remain_v for_o a_o testimony_n &_o witness_n of_o that_o covenant_n which_o because_o it_o be_v ordain_v and_o hallow_v by_o his_o own_o mouth_n retain_v and_o keep_v she_o own_o
or_o seek_v new_a place_n to_o offer_v their_o sacrifice_n &_o oblation_n in_o but_o to_o come_v and_o to_o stay_v themselves_o within_o the_o court_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n or_o of_o the_o temple_n jesus_n christ_n will_v not_o despise_v this_o place_n but_o we_o know_v that_o whatsoever_o corruption_n be_v there_o no_o faithful_a man_n be_v enforce_v to_o cleave_v or_o stick_v to_o any_o superstitious_a manner_n or_o custom_n which_o be_v not_o practise_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o as_o all_o there_o be_v of_o superstition_n and_o manifest_a idolatry_n so_o they_o will_v constrain_v and_o enforce_v the_o faithful_a by_o fire_n and_o sword_n to_o consent_v thereto_o and_o to_o pollute_v and_o defile_v themselves_o therewith_o against_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o god_n express_v forbid_v last_o to_o what_o point_n do_v jesus_n christ_n bring_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n when_o the_o high_a priest_n scribe_n and_o pharisee_n show_v themselves_o great_a mad_a man_n not_o do_v their_o duty_n towards_o it_o do_v he_o not_o take_v his_o vineyard_n from_o these_o husbandman_n who_o do_v not_o give_v he_o the_o fruit_n which_o belong_v unto_o he_o and_o commit_v the_o same_o unto_o other_o that_o be_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n to_o yield_v he_o fruit_n in_o their_o season_n even_o so_o likewise_o have_v the_o lord_n do_v therewith_o in_o the_o popedom_n he_o have_v not_o destroy_v his_o church_n but_o have_v only_o change_v the_o estate_n thereof_o take_v it_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n and_o guide_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o popish_a priest_n and_o place_v it_o again_o under_o the_o government_n and_o charge_n of_o other_o guider_n and_o leader_n who_o can_v see_v more_o clere_o and_o be_v of_o better_a trust_n as_o it_o be_v speak_v in_o saint_n mathewe_n 4●_n matt._n 22_o 4●_n under_o the_o similitude_n or_o parable_n of_o the_o vineyard_n to_o conclude_v if_o they_o ask_v what_o shall_v become_v then_o of_o our_o predecessor_n who_o die_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v they_o condemn_v i_o answer_v that_o we_o leave_v the_o judgement_n thereof_o unto_o god_n for_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o we_o to_o determine_v &_o judge_v of_o that_o which_o be_v hide_v from_o we_o &_o which_o indeed_o pass_v our_o knowledge_n and_o calling_n it_o be_v very_o true_a 3.18.36_o joh._n 3.18.36_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n pronounce_v that_o they_o which_o die_v without_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v damn_v and_o we_o can_v but_o say_v amen_o and_o give_v our_o consent_n to_o this_o neither_o serve_v it_o to_o any_o purpose_n to_o allege_v ignorance_n and_o to_o say_v that_o it_o excuse_v the_o sinner_n before_o god_n for_o the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a and_o manifest_a therein_o 12.47.48_o luk._n 12.47.48_o the_o servant_n say_v jesus_n christ_n that_o know_v his_o master_n will_v &_o prepare_v not_o himself_o neither_o do_v according_a to_o his_o will_n shall_v be_v beat_v with_o many_o strip_v but_o he_o that_o know_v it_o not_o and_o yet_o do_v commit_v thing_n worthy_a of_o stripe_n shall_v be_v beat_v with_o few_o stripe_n also_o 15.14_o matt._n 15.14_o if_o the_o blind_a lead_v the_o blind_a they_o shall_v fall_v both_o into_o the_o ditch_n saint_n paul_n say_v also_o as_o many_o as_o have_v sin_v without_o the_o law_n 1.6_o rom._n 2.12_o 2._o thess_n 1.6_o shall_v perish_v also_o without_o the_o law_n and_o as_o many_o as_o have_v sin_v within_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o law_n and_o again_o it_o be_v a_o righteous_a thing_n with_o god_n to_o recompense_v tribulation_n to_o they_o that_o trouble_v you_o and_o to_o you_o which_o be_v trouble_v rest_n and_o deliverance_n with_o we_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v show_v himself_o from_o heaven_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n in_o flame_a fire_n render_v vengeance_n unto_o they_o that_o do_v not_o know_v god_n and_o which_o obey_v not_o unto_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a destruction_n etc._n etc._n these_o place_n do_v open_o enough_o declare_v what_o be_v the_o end_n of_o those_o that_o die_v without_o faith_n although_o they_o be_v ignorant_a for_o their_o ignorance_n can_v not_o excuse_v they_o nor_o serve_v they_o for_o a_o cloak_n or_o cover_n to_o absolve_v and_o set_v they_o free_a from_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n for_o confirmation_n &_o proof_n whereof_o we_o may_v allege_v also_o and_o put_v down_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o leviticus_fw-la 4.2_o levi._n 4.2_o touch_v the_o offer_v command_v by_o god_n for_o the_o sin_n which_o be_v commit_v through_o ignorance_n lo_o what_o we_o have_v to_o say_v for_o one_o point_n but_o to_o that_o which_o remain_v touch_v our_o father_n and_o predecessor_n god_n may_v well_o show_v mercy_n upon_o they_o at_o the_o end_n of_o their_o day_n make_v himself_o know_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o secret_a virtue_n and_o power_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o put_v it_o into_o their_o heart_n to_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n that_o so_o they_o may_v be_v save_v for_o god_n be_v almighty_a to_o save_v his_o own_o people_n yea_o without_o use_v any_o of_o these_o mean_n which_o he_o be_v accustom_v common_o &_o ordinary_o to_o use_v to_o plant_v faith_n in_o we_o and_o to_o engrave_v it_o in_o our_o heart_n to_o our_o own_o salvation_n and_o this_o be_v s._n cyprian_n his_o answer_n touch_v those_o that_o die_v in_o some_o false_a opinion_n 3._o cypri_n lib._n 2._o epist_n 3._o if_o some_o one_o of_o our_o predecessor_n say_v he_o either_o by_o ignorance_n or_o through_o simplicity_n have_v not_o keep_v and_o hold_v that_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v teach_v we_o to_o do_v by_o his_o example_n and_o authority_n the_o mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n may_v pardon_v he_o but_o we_o can_v help_v the_o same_o be_v admonish_v &_o instruct_v by_o he_o behold_v what_o s._n cyprian_n pronounce_v herein_o it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o speak_v proper_o touch_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n but_o nothing_o let_v but_o that_o we_o may_v apply_v his_o speech_n general_o to_o the_o matter_n of_o all_o the_o other_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n the_o ix_o chap._n of_o the_o degree_n of_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n where_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o popish_a clergy_n and_o of_o the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o true_a pastor_n 9.38_o matt._n 9.38_o we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v heretofore_o that_o it_o appertain_v unto_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o harvest_n to_o send_v forth_o workman_n into_o his_o harvest_n for_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o any_o what_o gift_n soever_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o lord_n to_o thrust_v himself_o into_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n unless_o he_o be_v lawful_o call_v thereto_o 4.11_o ephes_n 4.11_o now_o the_o apostle_n saint_n paul_n write_v to_o the_o ephesian_n show_v we_o what_o workman_n the_o lord_n have_v send_v into_o his_o harvest_n that_o be_v to_o say_v apostle_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n apostle_n apostle_n touch_v the_o apostle_n they_o be_v choose_v immediate_o from_o christ_n and_o their_o office_n be_v to_o sow_v and_o spread_v the_o gospel_n abroad_o throughout_o all_o the_o world_n neither_o have_v any_o one_o of_o they_o any_o limit_n or_o border_n set_v they_o or_o some_o certain_a church_n appoint_v to_o they_o 2.8_o matt._n 28.19_o matt._n 10.2_o gal._n 2.8_o but_o christ_n will_v that_o in_o every_o part_n or_o place_n where_o so_o ever_o they_o come_v they_o shall_v do_v their_o message_n before_o all_o people_n and_o nation_n such_o be_v the_o twelve_o name_v in_o the_o gospel_n to_o who_o saint_n paul_n be_v add_v who_o be_v special_o appoint_v to_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n among_o the_o gentile_n now_o because_o this_o degree_n of_o apostle_n be_v institute_v and_o ordain_v by_o god_n for_o the_o establish_n of_o church_n those_o church_n be_v plant_v and_o establish_v this_o name_n of_o apostle_n ought_v not_o any_o more_o to_o be_v use_v among_o the_o minister_n as_o to_o be_v give_v and_o communicate_v to_o they_o and_o yet_o we_o read_v that_o sometime_o it_o be_v take_v general_o in_o the_o scripture_n for_o a_o pastor_n and_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o epaphroditus_n be_v call_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o philippian_n 14.14_o philip._n 2.25_o act._n 14.14_o and_o barnabas_n be_v name_v a_o apostle_n act._n 14._o prophets_n be_v distinguish_v into_o two_o sort_n or_o order_n prophet_n prophet_n some_o be_v under_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o in_o that_o time_n who_o be_v instruct_v and_o teach_v by_o a_o special_a revelation_n from_o god_n do_v foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v the_o other_o be_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n who_o in_o
his_o epistle_n dionysius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n in_o the_o three_o epistle_n to_o philemon_n call_v heraclas_n his_o predecessor_n pope_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o eusebius_n his_o seven_o book_n 7._o euseb_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 7._o &_o seven_o chapter_n there_o may_v be_v many_o such_o like_a testimony_n find_v which_o declare_v that_o the_o name_n pope_n be_v in_o ancient_a time_n common_a to_o all_o bishop_n if_o the_o question_n be_v touch_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o name_n suidas_n say_v that_o it_o signify_v in_o the_o language_n of_o syracuse_n as_o much_o as_o father_n but_o we_o have_v dispute_v and_o discourse_v heretofore_o large_o enough_o of_o this_o primacy_n now_o let_v we_o return_v to_o our_o first_o purpose_n &_o speech_n who_o be_v he_o the_o have_v ordain_v these_o order_n and_o ecclesiastical_a degree_n by_o what_o door_n have_v these_o pastor_n enter_v into_o the_o lord_n sheepefolde_a who_o have_v call_v and_o place_v they_o in_o their_o charge_n be_v jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a shepherd_n the_o prince_n of_o prophet_n the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n so_o ill_o advise_v or_o so_o careless_a that_o he_o have_v not_o place_v so_o many_o degree_n and_o office_n in_o his_o church_n as_o he_o see_v and_o know_v to_o be_v needful_a for_o the_o rule_n and_o government_n thereof_o see_v he_o love_v it_o so_o much_o and_o esteem_v it_o so_o dear_a and_o precious_a unto_o himself_o that_o he_o deliver_v himself_o unto_o the_o most_o cruel_a &_o most_o shameful_a death_n of_o all_o other_o to_o save_v it_o let_v these_o reverend_a prelate_n put_v down_o their_o author_n let_v they_o show_v from_o whence_o they_o be_v come_v &_o from_o who_o it_o be_v that_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v install_v establish_v and_o set_v in_o the_o church_n let_v they_o bring_v forth_o and_o allege_v the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o they_o can_v or_o if_o they_o can_v not_o let_v they_o leave_v off_o and_o cease_v at_o the_o least_o to_o strengthen_v themselves_o so_o much_o with_o their_o succession_n and_o so_o often_o to_o oppose_v and_o set_v against_o we_o their_o vocation_n and_o send_v 11.23.24_o the_o end_n wherefore_o the_o lord_n send_v his_o workman_n into_o his_o harvest_n matt_n 28.19_o mark_n 16.15_o 1._o cor._n 11.23.24_o but_o will_v we_o examine_v the_o end_n for_o which_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o harvest_n have_v send_v forth_o his_o workman_n into_o his_o harvest_n he_o himself_o have_v declare_v it_o when_o he_o command_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o to_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n after_o his_o example_n which_o in_o a_o other_o place_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o feed_v the_o sheep_n 12.15_o joh._n 12.15_o even_o as_o jesus_n christ_n say_v unto_o peter_n peter_n love_v thou_o i_o feed_v my_o sheep_n and_o s._n paul_n speak_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n 20.28_o act._n 20.28_o take_v heed_n to_o yourself_o say_v he_o and_o to_o all_o the_o flock_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o bishop_n or_o overseer_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n also_o s._n peter_n the_o elder_n which_o be_v amongst_o you_o i_o beseech_v 5.1.2_o 1._o pet._n 5.1.2_o who_o be_o also_o a_o fellow_n elder_n feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o you_o wherefore_o curse_v and_o woe_n be_v by_o the_o lord_n pronounce_v against_o the_o pastor_n which_o feed_v themselves_o 34.2_o ezech._n 34.2_o and_o feed_v not_o their_o flock_n or_o sheep_n and_o saint_n paul_n have_v regard_n thereto_o 1.1_o rom._n 1.1_o say_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n that_o he_o be_v call_v and_o send_v by_o jesus_n christ_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o corinthian_n necessity_n say_v he_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n 9.17_o 1._o cor._n 9.17_o be_v lay_v upon_o i_o and_o woe_n be_v unto_o i_o if_o i_o preach_v not_o the_o gospel_n because_o the_o dispensation_n thereof_o be_v commit_v unto_o i_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v say_v 13.17_o heb._n 13.17_o that_o the_o pastor_n and_o guider_n of_o the_o church_n aught_o to_o watch_v for_o the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o as_o they_o that_o must_v give_v account_n thereof_o and_o that_o be_v it_o that_o the_o word_n bishop_n import_v &_o mean_v that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o watch_n man_n or_o a_o overwatcher_n because_o the_o pastor_n ought_v to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v watch_n or_o watch_v man_n 3.17.33.2_o ezech._n 3.17.33.2_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o ezechiel_n that_o they_o may_v watch_v over_o the_o flock_n s._n paul_n in_o other_o word_n set_v out_o this_o end_n when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o ephesian_n 4.11.12_o eph._n 4.11.12_o that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v give_v apostle_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n for_o the_o gather_v together_o of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n 4.1.2_o 1._o cor._n 4.1.2_o and_o write_v unto_o the_o corinthian_n he_o say_v in_o one_o word_n that_o it_o be_v require_v of_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o disposer_n of_o the_o secret_n of_o god_n that_o every_o man_n be_v find_v faithful_a behave_v himself_o faithful_o diligent_o and_o right_o in_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o charge_n and_o office_n now_o according_a to_o this_o rule_n can_v the_o pope_n cardinal_n bishop_n &_o other_o priest_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n say_v that_o they_o occupy_v themselves_o in_o their_o charge_n to_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n to_o assemble_v the_o saint_n to_o give_v over_o themselves_o whole_o to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n to_o edify_v the_o church_n how_o do_v they_o satisfy_v and_o answer_v the_o ordinance_n and_o commandment_n of_o jesus_n christ_n how_o can_v they_o excurse_v themselves_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v almost_o all_o accuse_v according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o ezechiel_n and_o s._n paul_n whereof_o we_o speak_v not_o long_o sithence_o what_o can_v they_o say_v or_o allege_v for_o themselves_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v excommunicate_v &_o depose_v if_o the_o canon_n which_o they_o attribute_v to_o the_o apostle_n of_o which_o we_o speak_v in_o the_o five_o chapter_n be_v well_o and_o right_o observe_v amongst_o they_o as_o they_o say_v they_o shall_v be_v indeed_o but_o behold_v their_o ungodliness_n they_o say_v that_o they_o exercise_v and_o execute_v their_o foresay_a office_n and_o charge_n by_o their_o vicar_n &_o deputy_n who_o they_o have_v substitute_v and_o appoint_v under_o they_o in_o their_o place_n over_o their_o parishioner_n yea_o but_o when_o jesus_n christ_n call_v and_o send_v forth_o his_o apostle_n do_v he_o say_v unto_o they_o go_v and_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o my_o church_n teach_v it_o and_o feed_v by_o vicar_n substitute_n and_o lieutenant_n which_o you_o shall_v put_v in_o your_o place_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o do_v not_o so_o but_o he_o give_v unto_o they_o in_o their_o own_o person_n the_o special_a charge_n of_o his_o church_n and_o command_v they_o in_o plain_a &_o express_v term_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n themselves_o and_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n moreover_o what_o sufficient_a vicar_n or_o deputy_n be_v they_o wont_a to_o have_v and_o how_o faithful_a meet_a and_o able_a to_o do_v the_o duty_n of_o pastor_n such_o bishop_n and_o person_n such_o vicar_n and_o lieutenant_n that_o be_v to_o say_v one_o of_o they_o as_o ignorant_a foolish_a and_o unskilful_a as_o the_o other_o but_o why_o do_v they_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o name_n and_o charge_n of_o a_o office_n which_o they_o will_v not_o exercise_v and_o execute_v why_o take_v they_o the_o hire_n wage_n and_o revenue_n of_o that_o labour_n &_o work_v which_o at_o no_o hand_n they_o do_v neither_o indeed_o will_v do_v for_o they_o have_v no_o care_n to_o have_v vicar_n and_z lieutenauntes_n but_o that_o thereby_o they_o may_v enjoy_v prebend_n and_o the_o revenue_n of_o their_o benefice_n and_o yet_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o have_v they_o as_o though_o it_o be_v to_o do_v their_o duty_n yea_o which_o be_v more_o than_o this_o they_o make_v accurse_v and_o more_o than_o profane_a division_n of_o their_o office_n between_o they_o and_o their_o friar_n villainous_o separate_v that_o which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v join_v together_o for_o to_o who_o be_v it_o that_o jesus_n christ_n commit_v the_o office_n to_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n but_o even_o to_o they_o themselves_o and_o to_o they_o alone_o also_o who_o he_o enjoin_v and_o command_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n but_o these_o man_n to_o wit_n the_o bishop_n parson_n &_o other_o priest_n
1._o tim._n 2.4_o that_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o person_n of_o what_o quality_n &_o condition_n soever_o they_o be_v and_o in_o that_o place_n of_o saint_n matthew_n 4.23_o matt._n 4.23_o where_o he_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o galilee_n heal_v all_o sickness_n and_o all_o disease_n among_o the_o people_n that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o sort_n of_o sickness_n and_o disease_n and_o indeed_o s._n peter_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n 2.16.17_o act._n 2.16.17_o make_v this_o sense_n manifest_a and_o plain_a unto_o we_o when_o he_o say_v that_o this_o prophecy_n be_v then_o accomplish_v when_o jesus_n christ_n send_v his_o holy_a spirit_n upon_o the_o apostle_n now_o we_o know_v that_o all_o flesh_n that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o man_n be_v not_o at_o that_o time_n endue_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n second_o the_o prophet_n speak_v not_o here_o of_o the_o public_a office_n and_o charge_n to_o teach_v but_o of_o the_o particular_a duty_n of_o every_o one_o call_v they_o general_o prophet_n who_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v endue_v with_o so_o great_a light_n of_o doctrine_n that_o they_o may_v after_o a_o sort_n be_v compare_v with_o the_o ancient_a prophet_n 31.34_o jere._n 31.34_o whereunto_o also_o must_v be_v refer_v the_o place_n of_o jeremiah_n 13.16.17_o mala._n 4.2_o matt._n 13.16.17_o which_o we_o have_v expound_v in_o the_o former_a argument_n and_o likewise_o the_o place_n of_o malachi_n and_o of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o 13._o of_o saint_n matthew_n it_o be_v not_o then_o without_o cause_n that_o joel_n attribute_v this_o title_n or_o name_n of_o prophet_n to_o they_o who_o have_v no_o public_a charge_n or_o office_n to_o teach_v but_o be_v only_o enlighten_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n 5.11_o 1._o thes_n 5.11_o because_o that_o this_o light_n be_v far_o more_o excellent_a than_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n itself_o be_v in_o diverse_a who_o live_v under_o the_o law_n and_o also_o though_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o exhort_v one_o a_o other_o and_o to_o teach_v one_o a_o other_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o godliness_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o the_o public_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v not_o superfluous_a or_o vain_a in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o self_n same_o god_n that_o have_v command_v father_n to_o instruct_v their_o child_n and_o all_o we_o to_o admonish_v one_o a_o other_o have_v also_o ordain_v the_o public_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o church_n that_o it_o may_v be_v there_o practise_v and_o exercise_v not_o for_o some_o few_o year_n only_o but_o even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o thus_o much_o touch_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o adversary_n and_o such_o as_o set_v themselves_o against_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n now_o let_v we_o bring_v forth_o our_o reason_n to_o prove_v the_o contrary_n the_o first_o reason_n be_v jesus_n christ_n have_v command_v that_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v and_o the_o sacrament_n administer_v in_o the_o church_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n then_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o ministry_n be_v always_o requisite_a and_o necessary_a in_o the_o church_n i_o prove_v the_o antecedent_n or_o former_a proposition_n by_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n write_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n of_o saint_n matthew_n 28.19.20_o matt._n 28.19.20_o go_v &_o teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v they_o to_o observe_v whatsoever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o and_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n for_o after_o the_o commandment_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o to_o administer_v baptism_n under_o which_o sacrament_n the_o other_o also_o of_o the_o holy_a supper_n be_v contain_v because_o the_o disciple_n may_v doubt_v or_o fear_v their_o charge_n as_o be_v great_a in_o labour_n and_o hard_a to_o execute_v jesus_n christ_n add_v a_o promise_n of_o his_o assistance_n not_o for_o ten_o or_o twenty_o year_n only_o but_o for_o always_o even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n wherein_o he_o manifest_o set_v out_o and_o declare_v two_o thing_n one_o that_o he_o will_v and_o ordein_v that_o the_o ministry_n be_v exercise_v in_o the_o church_n not_o for_o one_o age_n only_o but_o continual_o unto_o the_o consummation_n and_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o other_o be_v that_o he_o promise_v that_o although_o satan_n subtle_o devise_v and_o invent_v and_o practice_v all_o that_o he_o can_v to_o hinder_v the_o ministry_n &_o the_o work_n of_o god_n servant_n and_o that_o tyrant_n by_o their_o practice_n and_o violence_n enforce_v themselves_o to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o their_o power_n to_o overthrow_v and_o to_o bring_v to_o naught_o the_o church_n of_o god_n yet_o he_o will_v by_o his_o godly_a and_o heavenly_a power_n always_o mayntein_v his_o truth_n in_o the_o world_n and_o preserve_v his_o church_n therein_o by_o the_o ministry_n &_o labour_n of_o his_o faithful_a pastor_n the_o second_o reason_n 10.17_o rom._n 10.17_o the_o apostle_n saint_n paul_n say_v to_o the_o roman_n that_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o declare_v that_o god_n have_v accustom_v to_o plant_v faith_n in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o word_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o this_o outward_a mean_a but_o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o beget_v faith_n in_o we_o after_o some_o other_o fashion_n and_o by_o some_o other_o mean_v although_o it_o be_v to_o we_o incomprehensible_a even_o as_o it_o shall_v please_v he_o self_n but_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_a which_o he_o use_v or_o serve_v himself_o with_o to_o give_v we_o faith_n by_o so_o that_o they_o which_o will_v have_v faith_n wirhout_v the_o preach_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o word_n do_v as_o much_o as_o though_o they_o will_v live_v without_o meat_n and_o drink_n which_o god_n have_v ordain_v for_o our_o bodily_a life_n now_o hereupon_o we_o take_v and_o frame_v our_o argument_n thus_o faith_n be_v in_o all_o time_n and_o always_o necessary_a for_o man_n but_o faith_n be_v give_v unto_o man_n from_o god_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v in_o all_o time_n and_o always_o necessary_a for_o man_n the_o third_o reason_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o sacrament_n be_v ordain_v by_o god_n to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v seal_n of_o the_o word_n to_o seal_v in_o our_o heart_n that_o which_o be_v therein_o contain_v already_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o union_n fellowship_n and_o partake_v which_o we_o have_v in_o jesus_n christ_n it_o follow_v that_o where_o there_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v there_o we_o can_v have_v any_o sacrament_n for_o as_o a_o seal_n be_v altogether_o unprofitable_a yea_o be_v not_o allow_v a_o seal_n unless_o it_o be_v bind_v or_o set_v to_o some_o instrument_n or_o writing_n for_o the_o confirmation_n thereof_o even_o so_o the_o sacrament_n be_v altogether_o unprofitable_a yea_o indeed_o be_v not_o a_o sacrament_n if_o it_o be_v not_o join_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v to_o confirm_v the_o same_o unto_o us._n whereupon_o s._n augustine_n have_v sometime_o say_v let_v the_o word_n be_v join_v to_o the_o sacrament_n 13._o augu._n sup_v johan._n hom_n 13._o &_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v a_o sacrament_n of_o what_o word_n speak_v he_o very_o not_o of_o a_o word_n mumble_v up_o murmur_v or_o whisper_v without_o understanding_n over_o the_o element_n but_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v to_o the_o faithful_a and_o receive_v of_o they_o through_o faith_n as_o he_o himself_o make_v it_o plain_a when_o speak_v of_o baptism_n he_o add_v this_o be_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o preach_v by_o which_o baptism_n be_v consecrate_v and_o hallow_a 11.21_o 1._o cor._n 11.21_o to_o have_v power_n to_o make_v clean_o now_o from_o that_o which_o be_v above_o say_v we_o reason_n after_o this_o manner_n the_o administration_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n be_v always_o necessary_a in_o the_o church_n even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o jesus_n christ_n have_v command_v we_o to_o celebrate_v it_o &_o by_o that_o mean_n to_o preach_v or_o show_v forth_o his_o death_n until_o his_o come_n again_o but_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o supper_n can_v be_v perform_v without_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n
be_v not_o at_o any_o time_n perfect_v so_o long_o as_o she_o travel_v and_o fight_v in_o this_o world_n which_o mayor_n i_o prove_v thus_o first_o if_o the_o church_n be_v without_o spot_n in_o this_o world_n in_o vain_a have_v our_o saviour_n christ_n teach_v it_o always_o to_o pray_v 6.12_o matth._n 6.12_o forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n and_o sin_n but_o the_o lord_n jesus_n have_v not_o without_o good_a cause_n give_v we_o such_o doctrine_n and_o instruction_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o in_o this_o world_n without_o spot_n yea_o rather_o that_o she_o have_v continual_a need_n always_o for_o to_o pray_v unto_o god_n that_o she_o may_v be_v more_o and_o more_o sanctify_a and_o obtain_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o all_o her_o sin_n second_o those_o which_o be_v with_o out_o spot_n and_o wrinkle_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o any_o wash_n because_o they_o have_v no_o need_n thereof_o but_o the_o faithful_a although_o they_o be_v wash_v have_v notwithstanding_o need_v yet_o of_o wash_v still_o as_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o declare_v it_o unto_o we_o 13.10_o john_n 13.10_o when_o he_o say_v he_o that_o be_v wash_v need_v not_o save_v to_o wash_v his_o foot_n for_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o the_o foot_n he_o mean_v a_o continual_a sanctification_n it_o follow_v then_o that_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o in_o this_o world_n without_o spot_n 1.2_o 1._o cor._n 1.2_o three_o saint_n paul_n cease_v not_o to_o adorn_v and_o beautify_v the_o corinthian_n with_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n who_o notwithstanding_o greevous_o abuse_v the_o holy_a supper_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o have_v amongst_o they_o division_n and_o partakinge_n which_o be_v not_o small_a fault_n yea_o indeed_o they_o be_v in_o doubt_n also_o touch_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a also_o he_o name_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o galathian_o 1.2_o galat._n 1.2_o the_o church_n although_o that_o poor_a people_n be_v deceive_v by_o false_a prophet_n and_o carry_v away_o to_o a_o other_o gospel_n contrary_a unto_o that_o which_o he_o have_v preach_v unto_o they_o these_o place_n do_v manifest_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n be_v never_o so_o pure_a and_o perfect_a in_o this_o world_n but_o that_o it_o have_v always_o need_v to_o be_v more_o &_o more_o purge_v &_o sanctify_v which_o thing_n s._n paul_n show_v yet_o more_o plain_o &_o open_o when_o he_o write_v unto_o the_o thessalonian_o for_o he_o call_v they_o the_o church_n 5.23_o 1._o thes_n 1.1_o 1._o thes_n 5.23_o and_o yet_o he_o pray_v unto_o god_n for_o they_o that_o he_o will_v sanctify_v they_o through_o out_o true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o novatians_n donatist_n and_o anabaptiste_n who_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o we_o in_o this_o point_n be_v not_o without_o their_o reply_n for_o first_o they_o allege_v unto_o we_o that_o which_o s._n paul_n write_v unto_o the_o ephesian_n 5.25.26.27_o ephe._n 5.25.26.27_o that_o jesus_n christ_n give_v himself_o for_o his_o church_n that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v it_o and_o cleanse_v it_o that_o he_o may_v make_v it_o unto_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n not_o have_v spot_n or_o wrinkle_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v holy_a &_o without_o blame_n but_o we_o want_v not_o a_o answer_n also_o saint_n paul_n consider_v the_o church_n not_o in_o herself_o but_o in_o jesus_n christ_n her_o head_n which_o she_o take_v hold_v of_o by_o faith_n so_o she_o be_v say_v to_o be_v without_o wrinkle_n and_o unblameable_a by_o reason_n not_o of_o her_o own_o righteousness_n but_o of_o jesus_n christ_n righteousness_n whereof_o she_o be_v make_v partaker_n because_o it_o please_v god_n to_o impute_v and_o reckon_v the_o same_o unto_o she_o for_o which_o cause_n also_o it_o be_v in_o a_o other_o place_n 1.30_o 1._o cor._n 1.30_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v make_v of_o god_n the_o father_n unto_o we_o wisdom_n righteousness_n sanctification_n and_o redemption_n moreover_o we_o may_v say_v that_o saint_n paul_n speak_v of_o sanctification_n or_o holiness_n promise_v and_o which_o be_v not_o yet_o full_o accomplish_v as_o though_o he_o call_v &_o say_v the_o church_n to_o be_v without_o spot_n not_o that_o it_o be_v so_o here_o below_o on_o the_o earth_n but_o because_o that_o one_o day_n it_o shall_v so_o be_v above_o in_o heaven_n 34._o augu._n lib._n de_fw-la nuptiis_fw-la &_o concupise_v cap._n 34._o and_o after_o this_o sort_n saint_n augustine_n understand_v it_o jesus_n christ_n say_v he_o cleanse_v his_o church_n by_o the_o wash_n of_o christian_n to_o make_v it_o unto_o himself_o without_o spott_n or_o wrinkle_n not_o in_o this_o world_n but_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v they_o allege_v moreover_o that_o which_o saint_n john_n say_v 3.6.9_o 1._o joh._n 3.6.9_o whosoever_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n sin_v not_o whereunto_o i_o answer_v by_o a_o distinction_n those_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o faithful_a sin_v not_o that_o be_v to_o say_v serve_v not_o sin_n or_o rather_o sin_n do_v not_o reign_v in_o they_o because_o they_o do_v withdraw_v themselves_o as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v or_o be_v enable_v from_o sin_n and_o with_o all_o their_o heart_n give_v themselves_o to_o holiness_n of_o life_n that_o they_o may_v glorify_v god_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n saint_n john_n take_v it_o and_o speak_v it_o again_o they_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n sin_n that_o be_v to_o say_v can_v not_o live_v so_o holy_o but_o that_o oftentimes_o they_o stumble_v and_o fall_v into_o sin_n for_o although_o they_o be_v sanctify_v yet_o for_o all_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o relic_n and_o remnaunte_n of_o nature_n corrupt_v which_o yet_o rest_v and_o remain_v in_o they_o every_o day_n they_o turn_v aside_o from_o the_o right_a way_n and_o sin_n in_o this_o sense_n s._n john_n mean_v not_o that_o which_o he_o say_v that_o whosoever_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n sin_v not_o for_o so_o he_o shall_v speak_v against_o himself_o have_v before_o say_v if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n 1.8.10_o 1._o joh._n 1.8.10_o we_o deceive_v our_o self_n and_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o we_o yea_o we_o make_v god_n a_o liar_n and_o his_o word_n be_v not_o in_o us._n so_o it_o be_v then_o that_o though_o there_o seem_v to_o be_v some_o contrariety_n between_o these_o two_o to_o say_v that_o we_o be_v sinner_n and_o saint_n both_o together_o yet_o all_o agree_v together_o very_o well_o for_o every_o man_n if_o we_o consider_v he_o in_o his_o own_o nature_n according_a to_o which_o he_o be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o wrath_n he_o be_v a_o sinner_n worthy_a of_o death_n and_o eternal_a damnation_n but_o if_o we_o consider_v he_o in_o jesus_n christ_n as_o a_o christian_a and_o faithful_a man_n he_o be_v holy_a so_o that_o he_o sin_v not_o that_o be_v to_o say_v serve_v not_o sin_n and_o his_o imperfection_n be_v hide_v and_o cover_v because_o that_o they_o be_v not_o impute_v unto_o he_o and_o moreover_o the_o lord_n jesus_n make_v he_o partaker_n of_o his_o righteousness_n and_o so_o be_v a_o sinner_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o own_o nature_n he_o be_v notwithstanding_o repute_v and_o account_v holy_a &_o just_a before_o god_n but_o that_o which_o we_o have_v hitherto_o speak_v touch_v or_o concern_v the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n particular_o we_o may_v also_o well_o say_v touch_v the_o church_n consider_v in_o she_o own_o body_n that_o it_o shall_v never_o here_o be_v purge_v from_o all_o filthiness_n because_o that_o so_o long_o as_o she_o shall_v be_v on_o earth_n there_o shall_v be_v in_o her_o wicked_a one_o mingle_v with_o good_a one_o which_o thing_n jesus_n christ_n have_v declare_v in_o the_o gospel_n by_o two_o similitude_n etc._n matth._n 13.24.25_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o first_o he_o say_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n be_v like_a unto_o a_o man_n which_o sow_v good_a seed_n in_o his_o field_n but_o while_o man_n sleep_v there_o come_v his_o enemy_n &_o sow_a tare_n amongst_o the_o wheat_n and_o go_v his_o way_n and_o when_o the_o blade_n be_v spring_v up_o and_o have_v bring_v forth_o fruit_n than_o appear_v the_o tare_n also_o then_o come_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o household_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o master_n sow_v thou_o not_o etc._n etc._n and_o will_v present_o have_v go_v and_o gather_v they_o up_o but_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o lest_o while_o they_o go_v about_o to_o gather_v the_o tare_n they_o pluck_v up_o also_o with_o they_o the_o wheat_n therefore_o he_o will_v that_o they_o may_v both_o grow_v together_o until_o the_o harvest_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o harvest_n the_o reaper_n shall_v gather_v the_o tare_n and_o bind_v they_o in_o sheaf_n to_o burn_v they_o but_o they_o shall_v gather_v the_o good_a
to_o prove_v the_o contrary_n the_o romish_a catholic_n think_v that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v although_o she_o do_v and_o appoint_v any_o thing_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n she_o may_v go_v and_o walk_v without_o the_o order_n and_o direction_n of_o the_o word_n and_o although_o she_o go_v and_o walk_v yet_o she_o can_v not_o err_v or_o go_v astray_o but_o they_o separate_v that_o which_o ought_v always_o to_o remain_v and_o abide_v join_v together_o for_o if_o the_o church_n follow_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o keep_v she_o from_o error_n as_o on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o she_o follow_v it_o therein_o she_o do_v well_o and_o can_v not_o err_v the_o reason_n whereby_o they_o will_v persuade_v man_n that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v be_v these_o follow_v the_o first_o be_v this_o jesus_n christ_n do_v not_o at_o any_o time_n forsake_v his_o church_n which_o be_v his_o spouse_n or_o wife_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o can_v not_o err_v i_o answer_v by_o a_o distinction_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o the_o church_n follow_v jesus_n christ_n it_o can_v not_o be_v forsake_v of_o he_o and_o can_v not_o err_v but_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o live_v in_o the_o world_n do_v stray_v from_o christ_n and_o go_v aside_o from_o god_n commandment_n it_o be_v forsake_v of_o he_o and_o do_v err_v the_o second_o reason_n the_o church_n be_v call_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n 3.15_o 1._o tim._n 3.15_o wherefore_o it_o can_v not_o err_v i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v in_o this_o argument_n a_o double_a error_n the_o one_o touch_v the_o word_n church_n for_o saint_n paul_n mean_v the_o catholic_a church_n &_o not_o any_o particular_a one_o the_o other_o be_v concern_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o he_o call_v the_o church_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n not_o that_o it_o be_v so_o simple_o and_o indeed_o of_o itself_o but_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o because_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n have_v not_o place_n in_o the_o world_n save_v only_o in_o the_o church_n for_o as_o much_o therefore_o as_o god_n maintain_v his_o truth_n among_o man_n and_o make_v it_o always_o to_o go_v it_o right_a course_n timothae_n chrysost_n in_o 3._o cap._n 1._o ad_fw-la timothae_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o be_v the_o church_n call_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o be_v short_a because_o that_o god_n himself_o come_v not_o down_o from_o heaven_n and_o do_v not_o every_o day_n send_v his_o angel_n to_o maintain_v his_o truth_n among_o man_n &_o to_o publish_v it_o to_o the_o world_n but_o use_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n for_o this_o effect_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n for_o this_o cause_n it_o be_v call_v the_o column_n or_o pillar_n of_o truth_n because_o that_o by_o the_o preachinge_a of_o the_o word_n it_o be_v retain_v amongst_o man_n &_o countergard_v to_o the_o end_n that_o it_o decay_n not_z or_o perish_v from_o the_o memory_n or_o remembrance_n of_o man_n the_o third_o reason_n the_o church_n be_v govern_v and_o guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n how_o then_o can_v it_o err_v i_o answer_v that_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n suffer_v itself_o to_o be_v guide_v by_o he_o and_o obey_v he_o she_o can_v not_o err_v but_o if_o she_o do_v the_o contrary_a she_o may_v err_v and_o do_v err_v the_o four_o reason_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n no_o error_n can_v have_v any_o place_n 13.24.16.19_o matth._n 13.24.16.19_o for_o truth_n reign_v therein_o but_o the_o church_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n it_o follow_v then_o that_o in_o the_o church_n no_o error_n can_v have_v place_n all_o this_o be_v true_a of_o the_o catholic_a church_n yea_o and_o of_o particular_a church_n also_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o not_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n and_o of_o the_o flesh_n that_o be_v to_o say_v so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o be_v assembly_n subject_a in_o all_o thing_n to_o jesus_n christ_n the_o king_n of_o heaven_n but_o be_v be_v that_o particular_a church_n so_o obedient_a to_o jesus_n christ_n the_o king_n of_o heaven_n that_o it_o err_v not_o &_o fail_v not_o in_o any_o point_n &_o particular_a duty_n the_o five_o reason_n council_n can_v err_v but_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o counsel_n therefore_o the_o church_n can_v err_v this_o syllogism_n pretend_v and_o labour_v to_o prove_v a_o uncertain_a thing_n by_o another_o thing_n yet_o more_o uncertain_a for_o many_o example_n do_v plain_o testify_v that_o the_o council_n may_v err_v as_o indeed_o they_o have_v oftentimes_o err_v and_o touch_v the_o first_o the_o council_n that_o ahab_n assemble_v of_o four_o hundred_o prophet_n do_v not_o it_o err_v it_o be_v write_v that_o they_o be_v come_v to_o this_o wicked_a king_n to_o flatter_v he_o etc._n 1._o king_n 22.6_o etc._n etc._n satan_n be_v send_v out_o by_z and_o from_o god_n to_o be_v a_o lie_a spirit_n in_o their_o mouth_n so_o all_o of_o they_o with_o one_o consent_n condemn_v the_o truth_n michaiah_n alone_o withstand_v they_o who_o be_v reprove_v as_o a_o heretic_n beat_v &_o put_v into_o prison_n 11.47_o john_n 11.47_o the_o council_n which_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o pharisee_n assemble_v in_o jerusalem_n against_o jesus_n christ_n do_v not_o it_o err_v we_o see_v how_o they_o condemn_v jesus_n christ_n &_o little_o regard_v yea_o much_o despise_v his_o doctrine_n and_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o the_o council_n and_o synod_n which_o be_v hold_v &_o keep_v after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n even_o unto_o our_o age_n whereof_o some_o have_v reprove_v and_o undo_v that_o which_o be_v establish_v and_o do_v by_o other_o for_o of_o necessity_n either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o have_v err_v they_o be_v repugnant_a and_o contrary_a one_o of_o they_o to_o a_o other_o example_n hereof_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o which_o saint_n cyprian_a be_v precedent_n do_v decree_n carthag_a con._n carthag_a that_o those_o which_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n shall_v be_v baptize_v again_o which_o decree_n be_v break_v and_o overthrow_v carthag_n council_n carthag_n by_o a_o other_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v after_o the_o second_o synod_n of_o ephesus_n eph._n synod_n eph._n consent_v to_o eutyches_n his_o error_n and_o embrace_v the_o same_o and_o receive_v it_o in_o this_o that_o he_o confess_v in_o jesus_n christ_n but_o one_o only_a nature_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o divine_a nature_n which_o error_n be_v afterwards_o confute_v and_o cast_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n chalcedo_n conc._n chalcedo_n by_o the_o general_a council_n of_o chalcedonia_n the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n constant_n conci_fw-la constant_n call_v by_o the_o emperor_n leo_n about_o nine_o hundred_o year_n ago_o ordain_v that_o man_n shall_v throw_v down_o &_o break_v in_o piece_n all_o the_o image_n that_o be_v in_o church_n which_o ordinance_n the_o council_n assemble_v at_o nice_a nicen._n con._n nicen._n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o irene_n the_o emperor_n mother_n be_v immediate_o after_o break_v and_o crack_v and_o commandment_n give_v that_o image_n shall_v be_v set_v up_o again_o 2._o con._n neoce_n con._n maien_n con._n carthag_a 2._o the_o council_n of_o neocesaria_n and_o of_o maience_n &_o the_o second_o council_n of_o carthage_n do_v forbide_v marriage_n to_o the_o minister_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n the_o council_n of_o nice_a decree_v the_o contrary_a nicen._n con._n nicen._n permit_v minister_n to_o marry_v roman_a con._n braca_fw-la con._n tole_n 3_o con._n roman_a the_o council_n bracara_n do_v pronounce_v curse_n against_o those_o that_o abstien_v from_o eat_a flesh_n and_o this_o decree_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o third_o council_n of_o toletum_n but_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n ordain_v the_o contrary_a forbid_v the_o use_n of_o the_o flesh_n upon_o certain_a day_n of_o the_o year_n 3_o august_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr baptis_n contra_fw-la donatist_n cap._n 3_o to_o be_v short_a s._n augustine_n plain_o declare_v that_o which_o i_o speak_v to_o wit_n that_o counsel_n may_v err_v for_o he_o express_o say_v that_o the_o letter_n and_o epistle_n of_o particular_a bishop_n be_v correct_v by_o provincial_a counsel_n and_o the_o provincial_a counsel_n by_o universal_a and_o the_o former_a universal_a counsel_n annihilate_v and_o disannul_v by_o the_o latter_a when_o by_o some_o certain_a experience_n of_o thing_n that_o which_o before_o be_v secret_a be_v open_v and_o that_o which_o be_v hide_v be_v make_v evident_a and_o plain_a neither_o shall_v it_o stand_v they_o in_o
the_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n see_v isaiah_n 1._o verse_n 21._o to_o the_o 24._o verse_n isaiah_n isaiah_n isaiah_n 3._o for_o 8.9_o isaiah_n 5.13_o isaiah_n 30._o ver_fw-la 9_o to_o the_o 13._o ver_fw-la isaiah_n 59_o for_o 2._o unto_o the_o 17._o ver_fw-la isai_n 64._o ver_fw-la 6.7_o jere._n 2._o ver_fw-la 5._o jeremiah_n jeremiah_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chap._n jere._n 3._o ver_fw-la 2.3.20_o jere._n 4._o ver_fw-la 22._o jeremiah_n 5._o for_o 1._o unto_o the_o 15._o ver_fw-la and_o afterward_o from_o the_o 19_o ver_fw-la to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n jere._n 6._o ver_fw-la 7._o unto_o the_o 11._o ver_fw-la jeremiah_n 8._o for_o 4._o unto_o the_o 11._o ver_fw-la jeremiah_n 9_o for_o 3._o unto_o the_o 17._o ver_fw-la jeremiah_n 13._o for_o 10._o unto_o the_o 15._o ver_fw-la jeremiah_n 22._o even_o unto_o the_o end_n jeremiah_n 16._o for_o 11.12_o jeremiah_n 18_o ver_fw-la 13._o unto_o the_o 18._o ver_fw-la ezechiel_n 5._o for_o 6._o unto_o the_o 12._o ezechiel_n ezechiel_n ver_fw-la 22._o ver_fw-la 3._o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n ezechiel_n 33._o for_o 24._o unto_o the_o 30._o deuteron_n deuteron_n ver_fw-la deuteronomie_n 32._o for_o 5.6.32.33_o touch_v the_o ingratitude_n and_o unthankfulness_n of_o the_o church_n see_v isaiah_n 1._o for_o 2.5_o isaiah_n isaiah_n isaiah_n 5._o for_o 47._o isaiah_n 43._o for_o 21._o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n isaiah_n 17._o for_o 10.11_o isaiah_n 63._o for_o 9.10_o jeremiah_n 2._o for_o 6.9.21.22_o jeremiah_n jeremiah_n jeremiah_n 12._o for_o 7._o ezechiel_n 16._o for_o 15._o ezechiel_n ezechiel_n unto_o the_o 24._o ver_fw-la zechariah_n 11._o for_o 8._o zechariah_n zechariah_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n deuteronomie_n 32._o deuteron_n deuteron_n for_o 15.18.23_o hosea_n 12._o for_o 1.9_o hosea_n 13._o hosea_n hosea_n for_o 6._o malachi_n 1._o for_o 2.8_o touch_v the_o obstinacy_n and_o rebellion_n of_o the_o church_n isaiah_n isaiah_n see_v isaiah_n 1._o for_o 5._o unto_o the_o 7._o ver_fw-la isaiah_n 6._o for_o 9.10_o isaiah_n 8._o for_o 10.11.13.16_o isaiah_n 26._o for_o 10.11_o isaiah_n 28._o for_o 9.12.13_o isaiah_n 30._o for_o 9.15_o isaiah_n 42._o for_o 19.20_o isaiah_n 48._o for_o 4._o isaiah_n 65._o for_o 11._o jeremiah_n 2._o jeremiah_n jeremiah_n for_o 24.29_o unto_o the_o 33._o ver_fw-la jeremiah_n 5._o ve_fw-la 3._o unto_o the_o 8._o ver_fw-la and_o ver_fw-la 20._o of_o the_o same_o chap._n unto_o ver_fw-la 25._o jeremiah_n 6._o for_o 10._o in_o every_o verse_n almost_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n jeremiah_n 7._o for_o 24._o unto_o the_o 28._o ver_fw-la jeremiah_n 8._o for_o 4._o unto_o ver_fw-la 8._o jeremiah_n 17._o for_o 1.23_o jeremiah_n 10._o for_o 11.15_o jeremiah_n 25._o for_o 4.8_o jeremiah_n 29._o for_o 17.20_o jeremiah_n 35._o for_o 13.16_o jeremiah_n 43._o for_o 2._o jeremiah_n 44._o for_o 7.10.11.16.20_o ezechiel_n 2._o ezechiel_n ezechiel_n for_o 3._o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n ezechiel_n 3._o for_o 5.10.26.27_o ezechiel_n 4._o for_o 3._o hosea_n hosea_n ezechiel_n 12._o for_o 2._o hosea_n 4_o throughout_o the_o whole_a chapter_n hosea_n 5._o for_o 4._o amos_n 4._o amos._n amos._n for_o 6._o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n zephaniah_n 3._o proverb_n zephaniah_n zechariah_n proverb_n for_o 5._o zechariah_n 7._o for_o 11._o unto_o the_o end_n proverb_n 1._o ve_fw-la 24._o unto_o the_o end_n matth._n 11._o matthew_n matthew_n ver_fw-la 16.17.21_o and_o so_o unto_o the_o 25._o ver_fw-la matth._n 12._o ver_fw-la 41.42_o matth._n 23._o ver_fw-la 37._o touch_v the_o pastor_n special_o and_o particular_o see_v isaiah_n 56._o for_o 10.11_o jeremiah_n 6._o for_o 13._o jeremiah_n 14._o for_o 14._o jeremiah_n 23._o for_o 1.2_o etc._n etc._n ezechiel_n 22._o for_o 25.26.28_o ezechiel_n 34._o for_o 23.4_o etc._n etc._n hosea_n 9_o for_o 8._o 1._o king_n 22._o ver_fw-la 6._o john_n 7._o for_o 47._o chap._n xiii_o whether_o the_o church_n be_v above_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o the_o holy_a scripture_n depend_v of_o the_o judgement_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n indeed_o have_v a_o very_a great_a authority_n among_o man_n in_o so_o much_o as_o it_o behoove_v we_o to_o hear_v the_o same_o if_o we_o will_v not_o be_v account_v rebel_n against_o god_n yet_o notwithstanding_o see_v she_o be_v the_o wife_n and_o scholar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n she_o ought_v always_o to_o be_v subject_a unto_o he_o as_o unto_o her_o husband_n head_n and_o teacher_n and_o therefore_o this_o be_v a_o article_n which_o we_o must_v hold_v inviolable_a and_o without_o breach_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o depend_v and_o hang_v on_o christ_n and_o his_o word_n and_o to_o have_v her_o authority_n from_o the_o same_o word_n and_o not_o on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n shall_v depend_v and_o hang_v upon_o the_o credit_n and_o authority_n thereof_o from_o the_o church_n notwithstanding_o many_o be_v find_v which_o hold_v altogether_o the_o contrary_a set_v as_o we_o say_v the_o cart_n before_o the_o horse_n and_o plow_v or_o wain_n before_o the_o ox_n and_o utter_o overthrow_v all_o order_n for_o they_o suppose_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v no_o more_o certainty_n and_o authority_n than_o it_o please_v the_o church_n that_o by_o her_o allowance_n and_o consent_n it_o shall_v have_v and_o these_o be_v the_o romish_a catholic_n who_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n after_o this_o manner_n give_v it_o authority_n over_o &_o above_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o make_v man_n to_o believe_v that_o what_o so_o ever_o it_o decree_v determine_v and_o conclude_v we_o must_v hold_v her_o judgement_n sentence_n and_o resolution_n as_o a_o certain_a oracle_n come_v from_o heaven_n and_o to_o be_v short_a as_o a_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n and_o behold_v their_o reason_n for_o this_o the_o first_o reason_n the_o church_n by_o her_o judgement_n have_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v be_v acknowledge_v for_o the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n and_o have_v distinguish_v separate_v and_o sunder_v it_o from_o all_o all_o other_o writing_n what_o so_o ever_o which_o man_n have_v publish_v and_o bring_v into_o the_o world_n for_o who_o be_v it_o that_o in_o the_o beginning_n have_v assure_v we_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o church_n alone_o and_o who_o be_v it_o that_o even_o to_o this_o day_n can_v certify_v and_o assure_v we_o that_o the_o same_o word_n of_o god_n be_v come_v safe_a sound_a and_o whole_a even_o unto_o our_o age_n but_o only_o the_o same_o church_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o authority_n and_o certainty_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v two_o thing_n or_o two_o manner_n of_o way_n first_o that_o this_o be_v a_o most_o wicked_a opinion_n to_o say_v that_o without_o the_o church_n the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v not_o have_v a_o sufficient_a witness_n to_o commend_v and_o set_v forth_o the_o authority_n and_o credit_n thereof_o unto_o we_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o saint_n augustine_n say_v hereof_o 1._o aug._n the_o assumpt_n virg_n mar●_n cap._n 1._o the_o authority_n of_o the_o truth_n say_v he_o be_v fruitful_a and_o plentiful_a and_o if_o she_o be_v diligent_o examine_v man_n shall_v find_v that_o of_o herself_o she_o make_v herself_o to_o be_v sufficient_o know_v haereses_fw-la alfonsus_n de_fw-fr cast_n li._n 1._o ca._n 8._o cont_n haereses_fw-la wherefore_o alfonsus_n de_fw-fr castro_n have_v sometime_o say_v see_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v come_v forth_o from_o god_n it_o have_v of_o itself_o already_o deserve_v that_o we_o shall_v give_v trust_n unto_o it_o and_o believe_v it_o and_o when_o the_o church_n publish_v this_o that_o it_o be_v give_v by_o god_n she_o do_v whole_o even_o as_o a_o witness_n which_o bear_v witness_n to_o some_o thing_n so_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v certain_a not_o because_o of_o the_o witness_n but_o by_o reason_n of_o itself_o and_o the_o credit_n it_o have_v and_o not_o because_o the_o church_n receive_v it_o and_o publish_v it_o but_o because_o that_o god_n have_v give_v it_o and_o make_v the_o same_o manifest_a unto_o us._n beside_o be_v this_o a_o small_a matter_n that_o we_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n 27._o joh._n 16.13_o 1._o joh._n 2_o 27._o it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v his_o peculiar_a office_n to_o guide_v and_o lead_v we_o into_o all_o truth_n and_o to_o teach_v we_o all_o thing_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o teach_v we_o this_o truth_n that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v of_o god_n and_o from_o he_o 2.12_o 2._o cor._n 2.12_o it_o be_v say_v moreover_o that_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o we_o
i_o thereto_o wherefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o gospel_n take_v his_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o consequence_n be_v stark_o naught_o for_o that_o which_o s._n augustine_n speak_v to_o one_o purpose_n or_o in_o one_o respect_n be_v apply_v to_o another_o end_n this_o holy_a doctor_n speak_v so_o as_o have_v regard_n to_o that_o he_o be_v then_o when_o he_o take_v the_o part_n of_o the_o manichee_n &_o as_o it_o be_v dispute_v against_o they_o now_o the_o manichee_n will_v that_o the_o epistle_n of_o manicheus_fw-la their_o author_n which_o they_o call_v fundamental_a contain_v in_o it_o all_o their_o false_a opinion_n shall_v be_v of_o like_a &_o equal_a authority_n which_o the_o apostle_n epistle_n beside_o they_o allow_v one_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o disallow_v a_o other_o and_o that_o not_o by_o the_o advice_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o their_o own_o proper_a and_o particular_a authority_n saint_n augustine_n have_v take_v in_o hand_n to_o confute_v the_o say_a epistle_n in_o the_o beginning_n speak_v thus_o the_o epistle_n begin_v after_o this_o manner_n manicheus_fw-la the_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o providence_n and_o appointment_n of_o god_n the_o father_n i_o ask_v who_o be_v this_o manicheus_fw-la you_o will_v answer_v the_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n i_o believe_v it_o not_o what_o will_v thou_o say_v thereto_o perhaps_o thou_o will_v bring_v forth_o the_o gospel_n and_o thereby_o thou_o will_v lift_v uppe_o and_o establish_v the_o person_n of_o manicheus_fw-la but_o what_o if_o thou_o have_v to_o do_v and_o deal_v with_o a_o man_n who_o do_v not_o yet_o believe_v the_o gospel_n what_o will_v thou_o do_v when_o he_o shall_v say_v unto_o thou_o i_o believe_v not_o the_o gospel_n for_o as_o touch_v myself_o i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o catholic_a church_n do_v not_o move_v i_o thereto_o behold_v saint_n augustine_n word_n by_o which_o it_o be_v altogether_o manifest_a that_o he_o mind_v not_o to_o infer_v that_o the_o gospel_n hang_v upon_o the_o allowance_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o that_o the_o church_n have_v great_a weight_n to_o induce_v and_o move_v the_o miscreant_n and_o unbeliever_n to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n this_o holy_a doctor_n than_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o foundation_n of_o his_o faith_n but_o of_o the_o beginning_n thereof_o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o occasion_n and_o outward_a mean_n by_o which_o he_o be_v provoke_v &_o stir_v uppe_o to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n when_o he_o be_v a_o manichean_a heretic_n and_o not_o as_o yet_o a_o christian_a to_o wit_n because_o he_o see_v the_o good_a accord_n consent_n and_o agreement_n of_o the_o church_n in_o receive_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o four_o chapter_n he_o confess_v that_o in_o former_a time_n he_o maintain_v the_o manichee_n part_n &_o that_o he_o be_v very_o eager_a and_o sharp_a therein_o and_o blind_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o sect_n now_o he_o speak_v thus_o how_o will_v thou_o prove_v that_o manicheus_fw-la be_v a_o apostle_n of_o christ_n shall_v this_o be_v by_o the_o gospel_n but_o if_o some_o one_o that_o believe_v not_o the_o gospel_n will_v say_v unto_o thou_o i_o believe_v not_o the_o gospel_n what_o have_v thou_o to_o reply_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v will_v thou_o not_o purpose_n put_v down_o and_o show_v unto_o he_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o touch_v myself_o in_o the_o time_n that_o i_o be_v a_o manichean_a i_o have_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v not_o drive_v i_o thereto_o as_o if_o again_o he_o shall_v say_v for_o as_o concern_v myself_o when_o i_o be_v of_o your_o faction_n and_o sect_n i_o be_v so_o settle_v and_o stay_v in_o your_o opinion_n and_o have_v hear_v they_o so_o attentive_o and_o diligent_o yea_o i_o believe_v they_o so_o steadfast_o and_o do_v maintain_v they_o with_o such_o courage_n &_o stomach_n this_o be_v that_o which_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o fourth_z chapter_n that_o very_o hardly_o i_o have_v ever_o forsake_v and_o renounce_v they_o to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o induce_v move_v and_o provoke_v i_o thereto_o the_o four_o reason_n he_o that_o have_v authority_n and_o power_n to_o take_v away_o or_o to_o change_v some_o thing_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v also_o authority_n over_o it_o but_o so_o it_o be_v that_z the_o church_n have_v authority_n and_o power_n to_o take_v away_o or_o to_o change_v something_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o follow_v therefore_o that_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n over_o and_o above_o it_o they_o thus_o prove_v the_o assumption_n which_o be_v the_o second_o proposition_n or_o sentence_n of_o of_o the_o reason_n saint_n peter_n have_v authority_n and_o power_n to_o take_v away_o and_o to_o change_v some_o thing_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o he_o change_v the_o form_n of_o baptism_n prescribe_v by_o jesus_n christ_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v command_v to_o baptise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n &_o of_o the_o son_n 28.19_o matt._n 28.19_o and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2.38_o act._n 2.38_o saint_z peter_n change_v this_o form_n have_v enjoin_v and_o command_v man_n to_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n only_o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o second_o of_o the_o act_n verse_n 38._o now_o if_o saint_n peter_n have_v have_v this_o authority_n and_o this_o power_n why_o also_o shall_v not_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v it_o as_o well_o as_o he_o i_o answer_v first_o for_o the_o consequence_n that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a and_o good_a for_o who_o be_v he_o that_o will_v yield_v to_o this_o that_o all_o that_o which_o be_v in_o former_a time_n permit_v to_o the_o apostle_n shall_v now_o be_v permit_v to_o the_o pastor_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v their_o successor_n second_o i_o say_v that_o that_o which_o be_v take_v from_o saint_n peter_n as_o true_a and_o right_a be_v false_a for_o saint_n peter_n do_v in_o no_o case_n change_v the_o form_n of_o baptism_n and_o in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o act_n before_o allege_a it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o they_o must_v be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n only_o 2.38_o act._n 2.38_o but_o simple_o say_v thus_o and_o be_v baptize_v every_o one_o of_o you_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ._n etc._n petrus_n lombard_n lib._n 4._o do_v 3._o sect_n b._n &_o hab_o de_fw-mi consecrat_fw-mi do_v 4._o cap._n in_o synod_n etc._n etc._n but_o let_v we_o see_v how_o peter_n lombard_n the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n expound_v this_o place_n if_o any_o say_v he_o be_v baptize_v without_o invocation_n of_o the_o trinity_n he_o be_v not_o a_o perfect_a christian_a unless_o he_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o we_o read_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n 8.12_o act._n 8.12_o that_o the_o apostle_n baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n 10.48_o act._n 10.48_o but_o under_o this_o name_n 3._o ambr._n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr spi_v sanct_n cap._n 3._o as_o s._n ambrose_n expound_v it_o be_v understand_v the_o whole_a trinity_n for_o when_o a_o man_n name_v christ_n these_o be_v understand_v to_o wit_n the_o father_n of_o who_o the_o son_n be_v anoint_v and_o the_o son_n which_o be_v anoint_v &_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o or_o with_o who_o he_o be_v anoint_v behold_v the_o advice_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n who_o do_v not_o altogether_o satisfy_v we_o though_o he_o speak_v much_o for_o us._n for_o whether_o we_o regard_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o else_o the_o form_n thereof_o we_o hold_v that_o the_o lord_n ordinance_n ought_v to_o be_v retain_v and_o follow_v in_o the_o whole_a and_o through_o the_o whole_a and_o that_o it_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o any_o particular_a person_n no_o not_o to_o the_o church_n itself_o to_o alter_v or_o change_v any_o thing_n therein_o and_o indeed_o as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v saint_n peter_n do_v not_o change_v the_o form_n of_o baptism_n but_o mark_v this_o his_o intent_n &_o purpose_n be_v to_o teach_v that_o the_o foundation_n accomplishment_n and_o fulfil_n of_o baptism_n be_v in_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o for_o to_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v take_v and_o use_v by_o s._n peter_n for_o to_o be_v receive_v to_o grace_n and_o favour_n in_o baptism_n by_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n so_o that_o
authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o four_o reason_n 14._o aug._n count_n max._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 14._o s._n saint_n augustine_n open_o declare_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v above_o the_o counsel_n and_o so_o by_o consequent_a above_o the_o church_n represent_v by_o counsel_n for_o write_v to_o maximinus_n the_o arrian_n touch_v the_o word_n homousios_n that_o be_v to_o say_v consubstantial_a or_o of_o the_o self_n same_o substance_n together_o with_o the_o father_n which_o word_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n disallow_v by_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n he_o say_v thus_o now_o i_o have_v not_o to_o use_v or_o allege_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a neither_o thou_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n to_o prevail_v thereby_o one_o of_o we_o against_o a_o other_o for_o as_o i_o be_o not_o bind_v to_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n so_o be_v not_o thou_o bind_v to_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a we_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v not_o partial_a or_o particular_a witness_n for_o the_o one_o or_o for_o the_o other_o but_o be_v common_a witness_n to_o both_o of_o us._n let_v we_o therefore_o by_o they_o dispute_v and_o reason_n of_o the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n between_o us._n chap._n xiiii_o of_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n now_o we_o must_v speak_v of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n in_o which_o notwithstanding_o we_o will_v be_v brief_a and_o short_a because_o there_o be_v of_o this_o matter_n a_o very_a large_a and_o sufficient_a treaty_n extant_a already_o which_o may_v satisfy_v and_o content_v all_o good_a mind_n and_o be_v entitle_v discipline_n the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n observe_v in_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n and_o also_o he_o that_o will_v read_v the_o institution_n of_o m._n caluin_n fidei_fw-la caluin_n li._n 4._o inst_z beza_n in_o confess_v fidei_fw-la special_o in_o his_o four_o book_n and_o theodorus_n beza_n his_o confession_n shall_v find_v there_o all_o that_o which_o may_v be_v say_v touch_v this_o point_n or_o matter_n if_o so_o be_v it_o that_o he_o will_v content_v himself_o with_o reason_n wherefore_o then_o we_o have_v in_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n for_o this_o present_a time_n to_o consider_v of_o four_o principal_a head_n or_o point_n the_o first_o be_v church_n discipline_n be_v necessary_a in_o the_o church_n the_o discipline_n be_v most_o requisite_a &_o most_o necessary_a in_o the_o church_n if_o we_o will_v not_o have_v all_o thing_n mingle_v and_o disorder_v therein_o yea_o full_a of_o confusion_n for_o even_o as_o there_o be_v no_o city_n nor_o town_n nor_o house_n which_o can_v be_v without_o discipline_n or_o policy_n or_o some_o order_n for_o the_o government_n thereof_o so_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o city_n &_o house_n of_o god_n can_v at_o any_o hand_n be_v without_o his_o policy_n and_o spiritual_a government_n and_o therefore_o saint_n cyprian_n have_v sometime_o call_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n virgin_n cyprian_n de_fw-fr tract_n virgin_n the_o keeper_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o mistress_n of_o virtue_n for_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o every_o one_o to_o do_v what_o they_o will_v without_o be_v hold_v back_o by_o some_o bridle_n what_o confusion_n and_o disorder_n shall_v we_o see_v in_o the_o church_n the_o same_o doctor_n compare_v also_o the_o discipline_n to_o the_o rudder_n or_o helm_n of_o a_o ship_n 7._o cypr._n lib._n 2._o epist_n 7._o thereby_o to_o declare_v not_o only_o how_o profitable_a the_o same_o be_v for_o we_o but_o also_o how_o necessary_a and_o needful_a for_o see_v that_o the_o church_n be_v in_o this_o world_n as_o a_o ship_n upon_o the_o sea_n that_o be_v to_o say_v subject_a to_o the_o billow_n wave_n and_o tempest_n of_o tyrant_n and_o persecutor_n yea_o to_o wind_n and_o whirlwind_n of_o false_a doctrine_n how_o can_v it_o be_v able_a to_o subsist_v and_o stand_v if_o together_o with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o have_v not_o for_o the_o order_n and_o guide_v thereof_o her_o discipline_n to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o rampart_n ground_n work_n foundation_n and_o stay_v wherefore_o those_o which_o either_o disallow_v or_o despise_v this_o remedy_n which_o serve_v to_o preserve_v the_o church_n from_o dissipation_n or_o scatter_v abroad_o to_o keep_v man_n in_o the_o obedience_n of_o god_n and_o to_o hold_v every_o one_o in_o his_o order_n and_o calling_n labour_n and_o endeavour_v no_o other_o thing_n what_o so_o ever_o they_o will_v pretend_v than_o to_o overthrow_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o bring_v into_o the_o same_o all_o beastly_a excess_n and_o barbarous_a disorder_n and_o that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v esteem_v in_o the_o number_n of_o they_o of_o who_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o fifty_o psalm_n 50.16.17_o psal_n 50.16.17_o who_o give_v themselves_o to_o all_o iniquity_n &_o hate_v correction_n and_o discipline_n or_o to_o be_v reform_v be_v reprove_v for_o this_o that_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o speak_v of_o &_o rehearse_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n &_o to_o take_v his_o covenant_n and_o word_n in_o their_o mouth_n the_o second_o head_n or_o point_n be_v office_n the_o discipline_n do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o set_v a_o foot_n into_o the_o magistrate_n office_n that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a or_o church_n discipline_n incroch_v not_o any_o thing_n at_o all_o upon_o the_o magistrate_n charge_v and_o office_n for_o first_o the_o jurisdiction_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o civil_a iurisdicton_n or_o government_n differ_v great_o one_o of_o they_o from_o a_o other_o because_o that_o the_o one_o be_v spiritual_a and_o reach_v to_o the_o inward_a man_n and_o the_o other_o be_v bodily_a and_o outward_a therefore_o saint_n paul_n say_v 10.4_o 2._o cor._n 10.4_o the_o weapon_n of_o our_o warfare_n be_v not_o carnal_a but_o mighty_a through_o god_n to_o cast_v down_o hold_v the_o church_n than_o have_v not_o prison_n or_o sergeant_n or_o sword_n thereby_o bodily_a to_o punish_v evil_a doer_n neither_o use_v it_o force_n of_o hand_n confiscation_n or_o loss_n of_o good_n or_o amercement_n to_o punish_v they_o in_o their_o good_n and_o riches_n but_o only_o draw_v out_o and_o occupi_v 6.17_o ephe._n 6.17_o the_o spiritual_a sword_n of_o god_n word_n to_o correct_v man_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o amendment_n as_o the_o magistrate_n draw_v out_o and_o use_v his_o material_a sword_n to_o punish_v they_o either_o in_o their_o good_n or_o in_o their_o body_n and_o so_o both_o of_o they_o do_v their_o duty_n the_o one_o of_o they_o not_o bring_v any_o prejudice_n or_o hurt_n to_o the_o other_o but_o contrariwise_o very_o well_o aid_v themselves_o between_o themselves_o and_o help_v one_o a_o other_o and_o be_v most_o necessary_a and_o needful_a in_o their_o several_a charge_n and_o office_n the_o one_o not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v that_o which_o the_o other_o do_v one_o example_n to_o make_v the_o matter_n plain_a if_o some_o one_o have_v commit_v whoredom_n and_o so_o by_o that_o mean_n and_o fault_n the_o civil_a law_n shall_v be_v transgress_v &_o break_v and_o the_o church_n also_o offend_v now_o in_o reform_a court_n and_o place_n of_o law_n such_o a_o one_o shall_v be_v punish_v either_o by_o imprisonment_n or_o by_o whip_v or_o by_o some_o other_o punishment_n and_o so_o the_o offender_n shall_v have_v satisfy_v the_o magistrate_n law_n but_o yet_o the_o offence_n shall_v not_o be_v repair_v or_o reform_v in_o the_o church_n for_o it_o may_v be_v that_o such_o a_o evil_a doer_n will_v in_o steed_n of_o give_v or_o show_v some_o sign_n of_o repentance_n murmur_n be_v angry_a and_o despiteful_o deal_v with_o the_o church_n in_o such_o a_o case_n the_o church_n before_o that_o it_o receive_v he_o to_o the_o holy_a supper_n shall_v require_v of_o he_o a_o public_a testimony_n and_o open_a token_n of_o this_o repentance_n and_o by_o consequent_a as_o the_o magistrate_n shall_v have_v his_o justice_n satisfy_v and_o answer_v so_o shall_v the_o church_n have_v her_o discipline_n satisfy_v and_o answer_v in_o sum_n the_o magistrate_n in_o the_o exercise_v and_o execute_v of_o his_o office_n respect_v man_n good_n and_o their_o body_n but_o the_o church_n in_o the_o exercise_n &_o execution_n of_o her_o discipline_n regard_v simple_o and_o only_o the_o soul_n &_o conscience_n of_o man_n second_o so_o far_o off_o be_v it_o that_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n derogate_v or_o take_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o away_o from_o the_o magistrate_n that_o contrariwise_o she_o maintain_v the_o obedience_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o for_o if_o she_o tend_v to_o no_o other_o
be_v usual_o to_o be_v find_v and_o have_v as_o well_o to_o make_v public_a prayer_n as_o to_o give_v advice_n and_o counsel_n touch_v that_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o assembly_n or_o company_n which_o have_v care_n of_o the_o poor_a they_o take_v advice_n and_o order_n for_o collection_n and_o distribution_n for_o aid_n &_o assistance_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o that_o the_o sick_a and_o disease_a may_v be_v holpen_v and_o succour_v and_o then_o be_v present_a with_o the_o deacon_n so_o many_o of_o the_o minister_n and_o elder_n yea_o and_o of_o other_o citizen_n and_o town_n dweller_n or_o parishioner_n as_o occasion_n and_o necessity_n require_v the_o consistory_n be_v compose_v make_v and_o consist_v of_o the_o pastor_n and_o elder_n whereunto_o also_o be_v admit_v and_o receive_v the_o doctor_n and_o deacon_n so_o far_o forth_o and_o in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o shall_v judge_v it_o to_o be_v expedient_a and_o profitable_a to_o advise_v give_v counsel_n and_o consider_v of_o the_o censure_n and_o of_o that_o which_o be_v requisite_a and_o necessary_a for_o the_o guide_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o of_o this_o company_n be_v it_o that_o we_o speak_v to_o which_o we_o say_v appertain_v the_o spiritual_a government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o indeed_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v govern_v and_o guide_v after_o this_o manner_n by_o the_o apostle_n accompany_v with_o the_o elder_n who_o altogether_o assemble_v and_o meet_v together_o so_o often_o as_o there_o be_v need_n of_o such_o a_o assembly_n to_o be_v have_v 15.2_o act._n 15.2_o for_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n be_v desirous_a to_o have_v advice_n and_o judgement_n in_o a_o difficult_a and_o hard_a question_n concern_v doctrine_n 21.18_o act._n 21.18_o do_v send_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o that_o they_o assemble_v and_o meet_v together_o also_o that_o the_o elder_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v assemble_v and_o meet_v together_o when_o james_n be_v to_o take_v counsel_n of_o that_o which_o saint_n paul_n have_v to_o do_v touch_v the_o purge_n and_o clear_v of_o himself_o from_o the_o slander_n that_o be_v lay_v upon_o he_o and_o give_v out_o against_o he_o and_o we_o see_v also_o whither_o jesus_n christ_n send_v the_o offender_n who_o be_v stiff_a &_o not_o yield_v to_o a_o confession_n of_o their_o fault_n 18.17_o matt._n 18.17_o when_o he_o say_v tell_v it_o unto_o the_o church_n for_o by_o the_o church_n there_o he_o mean_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o the_o consistory_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o governor_n and_o guider_n of_o the_o church_n even_o as_o chrysostome_n have_v expound_v it_o as_o we_o have_v before_o observe_v it_o and_o put_v it_o down_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o be_v short_a it_o be_v very_o manifest_a and_o plain_a that_o there_o must_v be_v in_o the_o church_n ancient_n or_o overwatcher_n appoint_v to_o this_o end_n to_o watch_v over_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o people_n and_o who_o also_o together_o with_o the_o pastor_n must_v look_v to_o the_o exercise_n and_o execution_n of_o discipline_n that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v well_o guide_v and_o govern_v the_o four_o head_n or_o point_n be_v church_n of_o the_o correction_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n touch_v the_o correction_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v say_v that_o in_o every_o church_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o consistory_n to_o exercise_v and_o execute_v the_o discipline_n now_o we_o add_v that_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v find_v true_a and_o declare_v special_o in_o the_o correction_n and_o censure_n whereupon_o we_o have_v certain_a consideration_n to_o be_v observe_v and_o mark_v the_o first_o be_v that_o we_o must_v make_v a_o difference_n between_o secret_a fault_n and_o those_o which_o be_v public_a and_o open_a that_o we_o may_v apply_v thereto_o meet_a and_o convenient_a censure_n i_o call_v they_o secret_a fault_n which_o be_v know_v to_o one_o alone_a or_o to_o very_a few_o person_n and_o i_o call_v they_o public_a and_o open_a fault_n which_o be_v notorious_a and_o manifest_o know_v of_o every_o one_o or_o else_o of_o very_a many_o man_n if_o then_o the_o fault_n be_v secret_a we_o must_v follow_v in_o the_o correction_n and_o amendment_n thereof_o the_o rule_v which_o be_v prescribe_v by_o jesus_n christ_n in_o matth._n 18._o 18.15_o matt._n 18.15_o where_o it_o be_v say_v if_o thy_o brother_n offend_v or_o sin_n against_o thou_o go_v tell_v he_o thereof_o between_o thou_o and_o he_o alone_o etc._n etc._n but_o if_o the_o fault_n be_v public_a and_o open_a we_o must_v follow_v the_o commandment_n and_o example_n of_o saint_n paul_n 5.20_o 1._o tim._n 5.20_o his_o commandment_n be_v this_o such_o as_o offend_v reprove_v open_o that_o the_o rest_n also_o may_v fear_v his_o example_n be_v in_o that_o when_o s._n peter_n have_v commit_v a_o offensive_a fault_n he_o do_v not_o warn_v he_o thereof_o apart_o 2.14_o gal._n 2.14_o or_o by_o himself_o but_o do_v reprove_v he_o open_o and_o that_o before_o the_o church_n the_o second_o consideration_n be_v that_o among_o open_a fault_n and_o offence_n there_o be_v some_o which_o be_v less_o than_o other_o some_o be_v and_o therefore_o discretion_n and_o judgement_n ought_v to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o censure_v thereof_o but_o all_o the_o circumstance_n can_v be_v easy_o express_v wherefore_o the_o consistory_n ought_v to_o be_v wise_a and_o of_o good_a judgement_n to_o practice_v the_o admonition_n and_o warning_n of_o s._n jude_n 23._o de_fw-fr 22._o 23._o when_o he_o say_v have_v compassion_n of_o some_o in_o put_v difference_n and_o other_o some_o which_o fear_n pull_v they_o out_o of_o the_o fire_n for_o amongst_o fault_n some_o deserve_v but_o simple_a or_o bare_a admonition_n alone_o othersome_a suspension_n from_o the_o holy_a supper_n other_o excommunication_n and_o other_o some_o other_o censure_n but_o we_o can_v not_o be_v deceive_v in_o this_o what_o so_o ever_o it_o be_v in_o follow_v &_o do_v that_o which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n command_v we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n rebellious_a and_o impenitent_a person_n also_o faulty_a person_n 3.10_o matt_n 18.17_o 1._o cor._n 5.3.4_o tit._n 3.10_o which_o stand_v stiff_o in_o their_o fault_n and_o consequent_o heretic_n the_o third_o consideration_n be_v that_o when_o the_o question_n be_v of_o censure_n and_o namely_o of_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o use_n of_o the_o supper_n or_o of_o excommunication_n one_o alone_o shall_v not_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o but_o it_o be_v necessary_a and_o meet_a that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v interpose_v or_o come_v between_o for_o one_o man_n alone_o what_o so_o ever_o grace_n he_o have_v receive_v from_o god_n can_v or_o ought_v not_o to_o attribute_v unto_o himself_o such_o a_o authority_n and_o therefore_o s._n paul_n be_v willing_a to_o excommunicate_v the_o incestuous_a person_n say_v thus_o 5.3.4.5_o 1._o cor._n 5.3.4.5_o i_o very_o as_o absent_v in_o body_n but_o present_a in_o spirit_n have_v determine_v already_o as_o though_o i_o be_v present_a that_o he_o that_o have_v thus_o do_v this_o thing_n when_o you_o be_v gather_v together_o and_o my_o spirit_n in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o such_o a_o one_o i_o say_v by_o the_o power_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v deliver_v unto_o satan_n etc._n etc._n although_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n yet_o he_o alone_o and_o of_o his_o own_o authority_n do_v not_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n this_o incestuous_a person_n but_o communicate_v his_o advice_n &_o order_n to_z &_o with_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o matter_n may_v be_v do_v by_o common_a authority_n &_o consent_n and_o indeed_o in_o old_a time_n this_o be_v the_o common_a &_o usual_a manner_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n shall_v be_v execute_v by_o the_o consistory_n for_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o apologetike_n 39_o tertul._n apologeti_n cap._n 39_o or_o defensive_a writing_n of_o tertullian_n if_o question_n shall_v be_v have_v touch_v they_o that_o ought_v to_o be_v excommunicate_v or_o of_o they_o that_o have_v commit_v certain_a fault_n whether_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v receive_v or_o no_o this_o authority_n appertain_v to_o the_o minister_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n who_o ordinary_o and_o common_o assemble_v and_o meet_v together_o for_o that_o purpose_n and_o matter_n but_o the_o denounce_v or_o publish_v of_o the_o excommunication_n or_o the_o cast_n of_o one_o out_o or_o the_o public_a receive_n of_o he_o again_o before_o the_o church_n be_v do_v by_o the_o pastor_n in_o this_o sort_n origen_n ordain_v 7._o
origen_n in_o johan._n hom._n 7._o that_o he_o which_o have_v be_v three_o time_n admonish_v and_o yet_o afterward_o amend_v not_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o saint_n cyprian_n 27._o cypr._n lib._n 3._o epist_n 10.14_o &_o 27._o make_v mention_n of_o the_o custom_n and_o manner_n use_v in_o his_o time_n touch_v the_o public_a and_o open_a censure_n of_o the_o church_n say_v that_o nothing_o at_o all_o be_v do_v by_o the_o bishop_n without_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n wherefore_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n declare_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o false_a dealer_n and_o indeed_o a_o tyrant_n when_o snatch_v away_o and_o that_o by_o violence_n from_o the_o church_n the_o right_a and_o power_n that_o belong_v thereto_o he_o arrogate_v to_o himself_o and_o to_o his_o power_n and_o authority_n to_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n and_o to_o excommunicate_v who_o so_o ever_o he_o or_o any_o of_o they_o shall_v think_v good_a the_o four_o consideration_n be_v touch_v the_o end_n which_o man_n ought_v to_o set_v before_o they_o in_o the_o correction_n of_o the_o church_n and_o namely_o in_o excommunication_n now_o there_o be_v three_o special_a end_n thereof_o the_o first_o be_v that_o those_o which_o be_v of_o wicked_a life_n and_o conversation_n may_v not_o have_v any_o place_n amongst_o true_a christian_n to_o the_o contempt_n of_o god_n name_n the_o second_o be_v that_o good_a people_n may_v not_o be_v corrupt_v by_o the_o conversation_n of_o the_o wicked_a 5.6_o 1._o cor._n 5.6_o for_o a_o little_a leaven_n leaven_v the_o whole_a lump_n the_o three_o be_v that_o they_o which_o have_v fall_v and_o offend_v may_v be_v confound_v and_o ashamed_a in_o themselves_o and_o afterwards_o lift_v up_o again_o comfort_v and_o reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n 3.14_o 2._o thes_n 3.14_o that_o be_v it_o which_o s._n paul_n set_v out_o and_o mean_v when_o he_o say_v if_o any_o man_n obey_v not_o our_o say_n note_v he_o by_o a_o letter_n and_o have_v no_o company_n with_o he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v ashamed_a 5.5_o 1._o cor._n 5.5_o also_o speak_v of_o the_o incestuous_a person_n i_o have_v determine_v say_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v deliver_v to_o satan_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n that_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n these_o three_o end_n be_v very_o large_o lay_v out_o &_o at_o length_n discourse_v upon_o in_o the_o four_o book_n of_o m._n caluines_n institution_n cap._n 12._o sect._n 5._o 5._o calu._n lib._n 4._o inst_z cap._n 12._o sect_n 5._o whereof_o the_o sum_n be_v that_o in_o correction_n and_o censure_n man_n must_v regard_v and_o look_v to_o three_o end_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o repentance_n and_o conversion_n of_o sinner_n the_o five_o consideration_n be_v that_o man_n in_o the_o reprehension_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n look_v well_o to_o this_o that_o they_o have_v not_o such_o consideration_n regard_n or_o respect_n to_o the_o outward_a appearance_n and_o show_n of_o man_n person_n that_o they_o tread_v the_o little_a one_o or_o poor_a people_n under_o their_o foot_n and_o support_v aid_n and_o hearten_v the_o great_a and_o rich_a 3.28_o deut._n 10.17_o gal._n 3.28_o for_o as_o god_n accept_v no_o man_n person_n and_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v neither_o jew_n nor_o grecian_a bond_n nor_o free_a male_a nor_o female_a but_o all_o be_v one_o in_o jesus_n christ_n so_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v always_o to_o walk_v with_o a_o upright_o and_o equal_a foot_n without_o turn_v aside_o any_o manner_n of_o way_n in_o receive_v and_o allow_v some_o and_o in_o refuse_v and_o disallow_v other_o it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o correction_n ought_v always_o to_o be_v temper_v measure_a and_o accompany_v with_o gentleness_n softness_n and_o courtesy_n to_o the_o end_n as_o saint_n paul_n say_v that_o he_o that_o be_v reprove_v or_o blame_v 2.7_o 2._o cor._n 2.7_o may_v not_o be_v swallow_v up_o with_o over_o much_o heaviness_n for_o otherwise_o we_o shall_v turn_v the_o the_o remedy_n into_o poison_n and_o hurt_v and_o therefore_o the_o same_o apostle_n do_v exhort_v we_o 6.1_o gal._n 6.1_o that_o we_o shall_v restore_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n such_o as_o be_v fall_v into_o or_o overtake_v with_o some_o fault_n 5.12_o 1._o tim._n 5.12_o and_o again_o rebuke_v not_o say_v he_o a_o elder_a unreverent_o but_o admonish_v or_o exhort_v he_o as_o a_o father_n the_o young_a man_n as_o brethren_n the_o elder_a woman_n as_o mother_n the_o young_a as_o sister_n with_o all_o pureness_n and_o chastity_n we_o must_v therefore_o moderate_v with_o gentleness_n and_o meekness_n the_o rigour_n or_o hardness_n of_o the_o discipline_n lest_o we_o hurt_v rather_o than_o profit_n but_o so_o far_o off_o be_v it_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o spare_v any_o man_n that_o the_o correction_n must_v be_v equal_o and_o indifferent_o apply_v and_o administer_v to_o all_o they_o which_o shall_v have_v need_n thereof_o whether_o they_o be_v man_n or_o woman_n whether_o they_o be_v great_a or_o small_a whether_o they_o be_v master_n or_o servant_n whether_o they_o be_v gentleman_n or_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n we_o know_v with_o what_o earnestness_n and_o heat_n chrysostome_n be_v angry_a against_o the_o pastor_n in_o his_o time_n who_o for_o fear_n of_o great_a and_o rich_a man_n dare_v not_o reject_v or_o put_v from_o the_o supper_n any_o of_o they_o when_o they_o offer_v themselves_o thereto_o nor_o before_o they_o be_v admit_v thereto_o matth._n chrysost_n hom._n 3._o in_o matth._n the_o blood_n say_v he_o of_o these_o man_n shall_v be_v require_v at_o your_o hand_n if_o you_o fear_v mortal_a man_n for_o their_o greatness_n and_o riches_n very_o man_n shall_v mock_v you_o but_o if_o so_o be_v that_o you_o fear_v the_o live_a god_n he_o will_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o even_o man_n themselves_o shall_v have_v you_o in_o honour_n and_o estimation_n and_o those_o which_o be_v lift_v up_o in_o dignity_n discipline_n a_o admonition_n to_o great_a man_n not_o to_o reject_v or_o despise_v the_o discipline_n ought_v not_o to_o refuse_v to_o submit_v they_o self_n and_o to_o make_v themselves_o as_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o discipline_n and_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o refuse_v the_o correction_n of_o their_o pastor_n and_o elder_n see_v that_o by_o this_o mean_n the_o lord_n will_v set_v they_o again_o upon_o their_o foot_n after_o they_o be_v fall_v there_o be_v i_o know_v not_o what_o manner_n of_o pride_n in_o many_o which_o hinder_v they_o from_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o the_o discipline_n there_o be_v beside_o i_o know_v not_o what_o manner_n of_o foolish_a and_o filthy_a shame_n which_o when_o it_o have_v once_o seize_v or_o take_v hold_n of_o they_o they_o love_v rather_o to_o continue_v in_o their_o vice_n than_o to_o be_v advertise_v or_o admonish_v thereof_o to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o may_v keep_v themselves_o there_o from_o but_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n be_v better_o advise_v and_o of_o a_o more_o godly_a mind_n for_o we_o read_v theodosij_n ambr._n lib._n 1._o epist_n 3._o in_o oratio_fw-la theodosij_n that_o when_o saint_n ambrose_n have_v excommunicate_v he_o by_o reason_n of_o much_o innocent_a blood_n which_o be_v spill_v and_o shed_v at_o his_o commandment_n he_o take_v such_o a_o censure_n in_o good_a part_n and_o so_o far_o off_o be_v it_o that_o he_o be_v stubborn_a and_o self_n will_v against_o his_o pastor_n and_o his_o elder_n to_o recoil_v back_o again_o or_o to_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o the_o church_n that_o on_o the_o other_o side_n approve_v the_o same_o correction_n and_o censure_n he_o unclothe_v himself_o of_o his_o kingly_a ornament_n and_o open_o bewail_v his_o sin_n in_o the_o church_n he_o do_v with_o tear_n groan_n and_o sigh_n demand_v and_o ask_v forgiveness_n thereof_o certain_o this_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v say_v to_o the_o pastor_n of_o his_o church_n what_o so_o ever_o you_o shall_v bind_v or_o loose_v in_o earth_n 18.18_o matt._n 18.18_o shall_v be_v bind_v or_o loose_v in_o heaven_n for_o thereby_o he_o have_v authorise_v his_o church_n in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o key_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o condemn_v the_o perverse_a stubborn_a and_o ungodlie_a and_o by_o the_o same_o word_n to_o reconcile_v and_o receive_v to_o mercy_n all_o true_a penitent_a sinner_n which_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o restrain_v or_o hedge_v in_o to_o be_v exercise_v and_o execute_v among_o the_o common_a people_n only_o but_o also_o upon_o lord_n and_o magistrate_n whereupon_o it_o
that_o be_v to_o say_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o otherwise_o the_o lord_n protest_v and_o open_o witness_v that_o he_o be_v worship_v in_o vain_a when_o man_n set_v out_o and_o preach_v for_o doctrine_n the_o commandment_n of_o man_n 15.9_o matth._n 15.9_o and_o he_o himself_o do_v straight_o command_v we_o earnest_o to_o take_v heed_n &_o beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharise_n &_o saducee_n touch_v which_o matter_n 10._o mat._n 16.6_o august_n in_o john_n tracta_fw-la 46._o cap._n 10._o let_v we_o hear_v saint_n augustine_n the_o scribe_n say_v he_o and_o the_o pharisee_n sit_v in_o moses_n seat_n do_v that_o therefore_o which_o they_o shall_v show_v unto_o you_o for_o be_v set_v in_o the_o chair_n or_o seat_n of_o moses_n they_o teach_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o so_o god_n teach_v by_o they_o but_o if_o they_o will_v teach_v any_o thing_n of_o their_o own_o hear_v they_o not_o and_o do_v not_o that_o which_o they_o will_v say_v for_o they_o seek_v their_o own_o profit_n and_o gain_v and_o not_o christ_n profit_n in_o sum_n then_o if_o the_o church_n make_v &_o ordain_v for_o we_o commandment_n draw_v and_o take_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o receive_v they_o and_o to_o yield_v ourselves_o obedient_a thereto_o otherwise_o not_o for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n duty_n to_o go_v beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o god_n word_n in_o make_v law_n of_o her_o own_o head_n and_o authority_n &_o invent_v new_a fashion_n and_o manner_n to_o serve_v god_n by_o and_o the_o rule_n of_o our_o obedience_n ought_v always_o to_o be_v the_o very_a self_n same_o word_n of_o god_n as_o cornelius_n say_v unto_o saint_n peter_n 10.33_o acts._n 10.33_o now_o be_v we_o all_o here_o present_a before_o god_n to_o hear_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v command_v thou_o of_o god_n the_o four_o reason_n we_o must_v obey_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n 10.16_o mat._n 18.17_o luke_n 10.16_o as_o we_o have_v a_o commandment_n give_v we_o therefore_o in_o these_o place_n mat._n 18._o luk._n 10._o but_o the_o law_n &_o commandment_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o church_n voice_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o must_v obey_v the_o law_n &_o commandment_n of_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v as_o above_o be_v answer_v that_o we_o must_v obey_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n when_o it_o come_v out_o of_o moses_n chair_n and_o seat_n that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o her_o commandment_n shall_v be_v take_v and_o set_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o when_o also_o the_o question_n shall_v be_v of_o thing_n indifferent_a which_o she_o shall_v ordain_v and_o establish_v to_o keep_v good_a order_n &_o to_o serve_v for_o edification_n and_o the_o maintenance_n and_o uphold_v of_o the_o discipline_n for_o in_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o god_n word_n and_o in_o those_o also_o which_o of_o themselves_o be_v indifferent_a but_o yet_o become_v and_o make_v evil_a through_o superstition_n to_o wit_n because_o that_o in_o they_o they_o will_v place_v the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o will_v think_v by_o they_o to_o deserve_v god_n grace_n and_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n in_o these_o thing_n i_o say_v we_o ought_v not_o at_o any_o hand_n to_o obey_v 5.29_o acts._n 4.19_o 5.29_o but_o in_o such_o commandment_n of_o the_o church_n we_o ought_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o obey_v god_n then_o man_n the_o five_o reason_n 27_o ester_n 9.26_o 27_o as_o in_o ester_n it_o be_v ordain_v that_o beside_o the_o feast_n command_v in_o the_o law_n they_o shall_v celebrate_v every_o year_n the_o feast_n of_o lot_n which_o be_v call_v purim_n 4.59_o 1._o macha_n 4.59_o and_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o maccabee_n the_o feast_n of_o the_o dedication_n call_v in_o greek_a by_o saint_n john_n 10.22_o john_n 10.22_o encaenia_fw-la so_o the_o christian_a church_n may_v well_o at_o this_o day_n ordain_v feast_n as_o shall_v seem_v unto_o she_o to_o be_v expedient_a and_o profitable_a for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o people_n as_o it_o have_v in_o time_n heretofore_o ordain_v the_o feast_n and_o holy_a day_n of_o saint_n peter_n of_o saint_n anthony_n of_o saint_n marcellus_n of_o saint_n margaret_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v no_o likeness_n at_o all_o between_o the_o feast_n of_o purim_n or_o lot_n and_o of_o the_o dedication_n and_o these_o of_o saint_n peter_n saint_n anthony_n and_o such_o other_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o those_o two_o first_o be_v in_o former_a time_n establish_v by_o the_o church_n beside_o the_o feast_n ordain_v in_o the_o law_n but_o let_v we_o mark_v i_o pray_v you_o how_o and_o to_o what_o end_n certain_o this_o be_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n &_o to_o bring_v to_o their_o remembrance_n his_o great_a benefice_n towards_o his_o church_n that_o they_o also_o may_v give_v he_o thanks_o therefore_o for_o in_o ester_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o feast_n of_o purim_n or_o lot_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o church_n for_o remembrance_n of_o this_o that_o the_o people_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o curse_a conspiracy_n of_o haman_n and_o judas_n machabeus_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n ordain_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o dedication_n otherwise_o call_v encaenia_fw-la in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o deliveraunce_n of_o the_o people_n and_o of_o the_o repair_n and_o hallow_v again_o as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o temple_n which_o have_v be_v pollute_v by_o antiochus_n and_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o synod_n may_v ordain_v certain_a day_n and_o solemn_o keep_v they_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o people_n may_v cease_v from_o their_o own_o work_n to_o fast_o to_o pray_v unto_o god_n and_o to_o yield_v he_o thanks_n according_a as_o thing_n shall_v fall_v out_o &_o occasion_n be_v minister_v so_o that_o it_o be_v do_v without_o superstition_n idolatry_n or_o evil_a example_n but_o how_o can_v we_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o two_o feast_n aforesaid_a approve_v or_o allow_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o papacy_n or_o popedom_n first_o they_o be_v but_o two_o only_a but_o in_o the_o popedom_n there_o be_v a_o infinite_a number_n for_o what_o measure_n do_v they_o ever_o keep_v in_o the_o number_n thereof_o second_o the_o two_o above_o speak_v of_o be_v institute_v to_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o at_o no_o hand_n to_o the_o name_n of_o any_o dead_a saint_n but_o these_o be_v ordain_v to_o the_o name_n of_o creature_n and_o not_o to_o the_o name_n of_o god_n as_o we_o hear_v they_o call_v they_o the_o feast_n of_o s._n anthony_n of_o s._n francis_n of_o saint_n vincent_n of_o saint_n sebastian_n of_o saint_n agathon_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o so_o of_o other_o three_o those_o have_v their_o foundation_n and_o beginning_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o always_o serve_v to_o edification_n for_o they_o be_v establish_v and_o appoint_v as_o have_v be_v say_v to_o thank_v god_n &_o to_o give_v he_o praise_v for_o the_o benefit_n which_o he_o have_v bestow_v upon_o his_o church_n these_o have_v no_o foundation_n or_o beginning_n but_o in_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n &_o serve_v to_o no_o other_o purpose_n or_o matter_n either_o more_o or_o less_o than_o the_o feast_n and_o holy_a day_n of_o the_o pagan_n and_o ethnic_n for_o wherefore_o be_v it_o that_o the_o papist_n give_v the_o name_n of_o saint_n to_o their_o festival_n day_n but_o because_o they_o mean_v to_o sanctify_v the_o say_a feast_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o those_o saint_n as_o they_o call_v they_o who_o name_n they_o bear_v and_o in_o so_o do_v do_v they_o not_o set_v up_o the_o saint_n in_o god_n place_n because_o they_o serve_v &_o give_v that_o honour_n unto_o they_o which_o appertain_v to_o he_o alone_o as_o in_o old_a time_n the_o pagan_n do_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o their_o feast_n and_o divine_a service_n these_o be_v the_o principal_a reason_n upon_o which_o the_o romishe_a catholic_n ground_n themselves_o thereby_o to_o prove_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n to_o make_v law_n to_o tie_v man_n conscience_n withal_o now_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o show_v and_o set_v down_o our_o reason_n to_o prove_v the_o contrary_n the_o first_o be_v this_o it_o be_v write_v in_o isaiah_n 33.22_o isaiah_n 33.22_o the_o lord_n be_v our_o judge_n the_o lord_n be_v our_o law_n giver_n the_o lord_n be_v our_o king_n 12._o jam._n 4._o 12._o and_o in_o saint_n james._n there_o be_v one_o law_n giver_n which_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o destroy_v whereby_o it_o be_v very_o clear_o see_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o god_n alone_o to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n appertein_v to_o his_o service_n the_o second_o reason_n
soldier_n &_o warlike_a company_n he_o be_v cruel_a barbarous_a and_o rude_a move_v great_a persecution_n against_o the_o christian_n but_o namely_o and_o chiefl_o against_o the_o doctor_n teacher_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n suppose_v that_o when_o these_o man_n who_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o pillar_n of_o christian_a religion_n shall_v be_v discomfit_v the_o people_n will_v thereby_o be_v easy_o turn_v away_o eusebius_n say_v 28._o euseb_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 28._o that_o this_o emperor_n be_v not_o kindle_v and_o set_v on_o fire_n to_o execute_v this_o cruelty_n but_o only_o for_o hatred_n which_o he_o bear_v to_o alexander_n stock_n and_o house_n wherein_o there_o be_v many_o christian_n but_o he_o have_v not_o any_o great_a leisure_n or_o time_n to_o exercise_v his_o cruelty_n for_o before_o he_o have_v reign_v three_o whole_a year_n he_o be_v slay_v of_o his_o soldier_n and_o with_o he_o his_o son_n who_o be_v nineteen_o year_n old_a and_o their_o body_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o river_n the_o seven_o persecution_n be_v under_o the_o emperor_n decius_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 247._o eusebius_n recite_v 39_o euseb_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 39_o that_o this_o persecution_n be_v move_v by_o decius_n because_o he_o mean_v evil_a to_o philippus_n his_o predecessor_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v 41._o euseb_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 41._o that_o dionysius_n the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n write_v unto_o fabianus_n the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n that_o his_o persecution_n be_v not_o move_v or_o stir_v up_o by_o the_o emperor_n decius_n but_o only_o confirm_v by_o a_o certain_a ordinance_n and_o decree_n which_o he_o make_v after_o it_o have_v be_v a_o whole_a year_n before_o stir_v up_o by_o the_o pagan_n who_o be_v provoke_v thereunto_o by_o reason_n of_o a_o certain_a stir_n and_o uproar_n but_o whatsoever_o be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o this_o be_v certain_a it_o be_v a_o terrible_a &_o cruel_a persecution_n against_o the_o poor_a christian_n 29._o nicepborus_fw-la li._n 5._o cap._n 29._o insomuch_o as_o nicephorus_n say_v that_o it_o be_v as_o easy_a a_o matter_n to_o count_v the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n as_o to_o number_v all_o they_o which_o suffer_v martyrdom_n in_o this_o persecution_n &_o that_o not_o in_o one_o place_n or_o two_o alone_a but_o almost_o through_o all_o the_o world_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o kind_n of_o punishment_n which_o they_o use_v against_o the_o christian_n we_o may_v easy_o judge_v how_o diverse_a and_o many_o they_o be_v by_o the_o extract_n which_o euse_n have_v make_v eusebius_n eusebius_n out_o of_o dionysius_n his_o write_n touch_v the_o martyr_n of_o alexandria_n for_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o boil_a pitch_n of_o ston_a of_o throw_v or_o cast_v sharp_a reed_n against_o their_o face_n and_o eye_n of_o train_n they_o upon_o the_o pavemente_n of_o the_o street_n of_o dash_v or_o crush_a they_o against_o the_o stone_n of_o beat_v and_o whip_v of_o burn_v of_o pierce_v the_o inward_n or_o bowel_n with_o point_a or_o sharp_a percer_n of_o cut_v of_o head_n and_o of_o cast_v they_o down_o headlong_o from_o high_a place_n saint_n cyprian_n also_o recite_v 25._o cyprian_a lib._n 3._o epist_n 25._o that_o certain_a be_v condemn_v to_o dig_v mettle_n in_o the_o mine_n and_o vincentius_n in_o his_o mirror_n or_o glass_n specul_fw-la vincentius_n in_o specul_fw-la add_v the_o tear_n of_o they_o a_o sunder_o with_o cord_n of_o iron_n burn_v lamp_n put_v and_o set_v to_o the_o martyr_n side_n the_o rage_n of_o wild_a beast_n hang_v and_o strangle_v and_o a_o other_o sort_n of_o torture_n or_o torment_n call_v chevalet_n when_o they_o rack_v they_o in_o piece_n with_o wild_a horse_n and_o beside_o all_o this_o the_o persecutor_n go_v so_o far_o astray_o that_o they_o take_v away_o the_o christian_n good_n bring_v and_o lead_v the_o common_a people_n into_o the_o christian_n house_n to_o pill_n and_o sack_v they_o as_o man_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v in_o some_o mutiny_n stir_v or_o sedition_n as_o we_o may_v behold_v in_o the_o write_n of_o dionysius_n send_v to_o fabianus_n which_o say_v thus_o that_o so_o long_o as_o this_o persecution_n last_v all_o the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v enforce_v to_o flee_v into_o the_o mountain_n &_o into_o the_o wilderness_n and_o to_o wander_v up_o and_o down_o as_o vagabound_v or_o stray_a people_n whereof_o some_o die_v with_o hunger_n thirst_n cold_a and_o diverse_a sort_n of_o sickness_n and_o disease_n other_o some_o be_v devour_v by_o wild_a beast_n other_o some_o slay_v by_o thief_n and_o robber_n and_o other_o take_v by_o the_o barbarian_n and_o lead_v away_o as_o slave_n the_o eight_o persecution_n be_v under_o licincius_n valerian_n and_o galen_n his_o son_n who_o be_v create_v emperor_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 255._o and_o reign_v fifteen_o year_n galen_n reign_v together_o with_o his_o father_n five_o or_o six_o year_n and_o the_o rest_n above_o 10._o euseb_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 10._o eusebius_n record_v this_o of_o the_o foresay_a valerian_n that_o in_o the_o beginning_n he_o be_v peaceable_a and_o quiet_a towards_o the_o man_n of_o god_n and_o guide_v by_o a_o very_a good_a amiable_a friendly_a and_o love_a affection_n that_o he_o show_v himself_o familiar_a towards_o the_o faithful_a and_o entreat_v they_o curteouslie_o and_o gentle_o that_o his_o court_n be_v full_a of_o christian_a people_n and_o become_v a_o church_n of_o god_n but_o that_o the_o master_n and_o principal_a of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o magiacen_n or_o sorcerer_n of_o egypt_n do_v afterwards_o persuade_v he_o to_o persecute_v and_o put_v to_o death_n the_o saint_n who_o as_o they_o say_v let_v and_o hinder_v the_o enchanter_n and_o their_o inchauntmente_n of_o which_o valerian_n be_v a_o earnest_a lover_n so_o under_o his_o authority_n the_o governor_n of_o the_o province_n do_v in_o every_o place_n execute_v a_o cruel_a persecution_n and_o the_o foresay_a eusebius_n add_v 11._o euseb_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 11._o that_o dionysius_n write_v these_o word_n of_o the_o cruelty_n exercise_v in_o alexandria_n this_o shall_v be_v a_o thing_n superfluous_a and_o more_o than_o need_v to_o recite_v the_o name_n of_o our_o martyr_n see_v that_o the_o number_n be_v almost_o infinite_a and_o there_o be_v diverse_a which_o be_v unknown_a to_o i_o but_o yet_o know_v this_o that_o amongst_o they_o there_o be_v of_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n man_n woman_n young_a old_a mother_n daughter_n soldier_n handicrafte_n man_n to_o be_v short_a of_o all_o condition_n and_o of_o all_o age_n as_o touch_v the_o name_n of_o torment_n the_o historiographer_n do_v rehearse_v they_o to_o be_v diverse_a sort_n they_o reckon_v the_o whip_n wild_a beast_n fire_n the_o sword_n tearing_z and_o rent_v a_o sunder_o of_o body_n long_o keep_v they_o in_o dark_a prison_n where_o they_o make_v the_o martyr_n to_o wither_v and_o dry_v away_o with_o grief_n and_o pininge_n forbid_v any_o to_o go_v to_o visit_v they_o lay_v to_o they_o flame_v &_o burn_a rod_n of_o iron_n to_o burn_v they_o plummet_n or_o ball_n of_o lead_n to_o kill_v they_o the_o drawinge_n with_o horse_n blow_n with_o great_a staff_n hurl_v they_o headlong_o into_o diverse_a torture_n or_o torment_n name_v chevalet_n bear_n and_o wild_a bull_n rostinge_n upon_o girdiron_n hot_a oven_n banishment_n violent_a take_v away_o of_o good_n and_o beside_o certain_a other_o torment_n the_o nine_o persecution_n be_v under_o aurelian_a who_o be_v create_v emperor_n in_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 273._o and_o reign_v six_o year_n speculo_fw-la vincentius_n in_o speculo_fw-la vincentius_n in_o his_o mirror_n or_o glass_n lay_v out_o and_o rehearse_v at_o large_a a_o great_a many_o of_o the_o faithful_a which_o he_o say_v suffer_v martyrdom_n under_o this_o emperor_n and_o add_v that_o he_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v diligent_o seek_v out_o in_o diverse_a place_n &_o at_o the_o last_o put_v they_o to_o death_n in_o france_n and_o italy_n but_o by_o the_o write_n of_o other_o author_n worthy_a credit_n it_o appear_v that_o aurelian_a do_v nothing_o else_o but_o think_v upon_o before_o hand_n and_o devise_v this_o persecution_n and_o do_v not_o execute_v it_o for_o eutropius_n vopiscus_n and_o eusebius_n in_o his_o chronicle_n have_v write_v that_o after_o this_o emperor_n have_v decree_v the_o persecution_n he_o be_v sudden_o very_o much_o astonish_v with_o the_o destruction_n which_o will_v have_v come_v thereof_o and_o very_o quick_o after_o he_o be_v slay_v 30._o euseb_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 30._o and_o eusebius_n in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n speak_v of_o he_o after_o this_o manner_n it_o be_v true_a that_o aurelian_a be_v then_o such_o a_o one_o towards_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v gentle_a courteous_a and_o a_o friend_n to_o christian_n but_o in_o
and_o oven_n when_o he_o deliver_v from_o death_n susanna_n already_o condemn_v when_o he_o set_v jerusalem_n at_o liberty_n when_o he_o bring_v saint_n peter_n out_o of_o prison_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o a_o angel_n and_o at_o this_o day_n although_o we_o see_v not_o angel_n visible_o round_a about_o we_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o we_o cease_v not_o by_o experience_n to_o feel_v god_n aid_n and_o succour_n and_o that_o after_o many_o sort_n yea_o extraordinary_a we_o know_v also_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v in_o zacharias_n 2.8_o zachari_fw-la 2.8_o to_o wit_n he_o that_o touch_v you_o shall_v touch_v the_o apple_n of_o my_o eye_n say_v the_o lord_n for_o in_o deed_n jesus_n christ_n account_v the_o persecution_n which_o man_n bend_v against_o his_o church_n as_o bend_v against_o his_o very_o own_o person_n which_o appear_v by_o the_o reproof_n that_o he_o give_v saint_n paul_n 9.4_o act._n 9.4_o say_v saul_n saul_n wherefore_o do_v thou_o persecute_v i_o who_o will_v ever_o have_v look_v for_o such_o assistance_n and_o help_n as_o god_n have_v bestow_v upon_o his_o church_n in_o our_o time_n be_v there_o at_o any_o time_n more_o furious_a and_o rage_a persecution_n be_v the_o pride_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n church_n ever_o great_a they_o spare_v not_o wisdom_n nor_o counsel_n nor_o power_n nor_o diligence_n nor_o man_n nor_o money_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o poor_a church_n may_v be_v altogether_o cast_v down_o and_o make_v ruinous_a but_o behold_v the_o prudencie_n the_o counsel_n the_o might_n and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n be_v far_o above_o all_o that_o which_o set_v itself_o against_o his_o greatness_n yea_o he_o work_v miraculous_o by_o hide_a close_a and_o secret_a mean_n insomuch_o that_o all_o the_o height_n of_o the_o world_n be_v confound_v and_o overthrow_v for_o as_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v 21.30_o prou._n 21.30_o there_o be_v no_o wisdom_n neither_o understanding_n nor_o counsel_n against_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n it_o be_v say_v 5.12.13_o psal_n 33.10_o job._n 5.12.13_o the_o lord_n break_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o heathen_a and_o bring_v to_o naught_o the_o devise_n of_o the_o people_n the_o counsel_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v stand_v for_o ever_o and_o the_o thought_n of_o his_o heart_n through_o out_o all_o age_n to_o be_v short_a we_o see_v that_o the_o church_n have_v in_o time_n heretofore_o be_v very_o apt_o and_o fit_o represent_v 15.17_o gene._n 15.17_o by_o a_o lamp_n or_o firebrand_n shine_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o dark_a or_o smoke_a furnaise_n even_o as_o the_o vision_n thereof_o be_v give_v and_o show_v to_o abraham_n whereof_o the_o reason_n be_v assign_v and_o show_v because_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v that_o his_o people_n shall_v be_v put_v out_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o darkness_n also_o by_o the_o burn_a bush_n which_o yet_o consume_v not_o 3.2_o exod._n 3.2_o as_o moses_n also_o see_v the_o vision_n thereof_o for_o as_o the_o bush_n be_v keep_v safe_a and_o sound_a in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o flame_n so_o the_o church_n have_v always_o be_v preserve_v by_o and_o through_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n although_o the_o tyrant_n and_o wicked_a man_n have_v seek_v to_o set_v it_o on_o fire_n &_o utterlie_o to_o destroy_v it_o the_o seven_o point_n that_o the_o church_n increase_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o persecution_n this_o be_v see_v from_o the_o time_n wherein_o under_o the_o emperor_n the_o church_n be_v persecute_v for_o look_v by_o how_o much_o they_o inforce_v themselves_o utter_o to_o extinguish_v and_o put_v out_o the_o truth_n by_o so_o much_o the_o faithful_a one_o be_v ready_a and_o prepare_v to_o defend_v and_o maintain_v the_o same_o in_o the_o act_n it_o be_v say_v 4.3.4_o act._n 4.3.4_o that_o when_o the_o persecutor_n lay_v hand_n upon_o the_o apostle_n and_o have_v put_v they_o in_o prison_n many_o of_o they_o that_o have_v hear_v the_o word_n at_o their_o mouth_n leave_v not_o of_o for_o all_o that_o to_o believe_v but_o that_o the_o number_n of_o believer_n be_v increase_v till_o it_o come_v to_o be_v about_o five_o thousand_o person_n also_o 11.19.20.21_o act._n 11.19.20.21_o that_o they_o which_o be_v scatter_v abroad_o because_o of_o the_o affliction_n that_o arise_v about_o steven_n walk_v throughout_o till_o they_o come_v unto_o phenice_n and_o cyprus_n and_o antiochia_n and_o that_o some_o of_o they_o which_o be_v man_n of_o cyprus_n and_o cyrene_n when_o they_o be_v come_v into_o antiochia_n speak_v unto_o the_o grecian_n and_o preach_v the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o that_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v with_o they_o so_o that_o a_o great_a number_n believe_v and_o turn_v unto_o the_o lord_n saint_n paul_n speak_v after_o this_o manner_n unto_o the_o philippian_n 1.12.13.14_o philip._n 1.12.13.14_o i_o will_v you_o understand_v brethren_n that_o the_o thing_n which_o have_v come_v unto_o i_o be_v turn_v rather_o to_o the_o further_a of_o the_o gospel_n so_o that_o my_o band_n in_o christ_n be_v famous_a throughout_o all_o the_o judgement_n hall_n and_o in_o all_o other_o place_n insomuch_o that_o many_o of_o the_o brethren_n in_o the_o lord_n be_v bolden_v through_o my_o band_n and_o dare_v more_o frank_o speak_v the_o word_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o david_n have_v prophesy_v touch_v christ_n when_o he_o say_v be_v thou_o ruler_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o thy_o enemy_n lily_n psal_n 110.20_o the_o church_n compare_v to_o a_o palm_n tree_n to_o rose_n and_o to_o lily_n the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v like_a unto_o the_o state_n of_o the_o palm_n tree_n and_o like_a to_o the_o condition_n of_o rose_n and_o lily_n for_o even_o as_o the_o palm_n tree_n the_o more_o it_o be_v lade_v and_o press_v down_o the_o more_o it_o grow_v &_o stretch_v out_o or_o sprede_v his_o bough_n in_o length_n and_o breadth_n so_o the_o church_n the_o more_o she_o be_v persecute_v and_o afflict_a the_o more_o force_n courage_n and_o liveliness_n she_o take_v to_o herself_o also_o as_o rose_n and_o lily_n be_v accustom_v to_o flourish_v among_o thorn_n so_o this_o be_v a_o common_a thing_n to_o the_o church_n to_o flourish_v and_o to_o increase_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o persecution_n vineyard_n the_o church_n compare_v to_o a_o vine_n or_o vineyard_n justinus_n compare_v the_o church_n also_o to_o a_o vine_n or_o vineyard_n when_o he_o speak_v thus_o in_o a_o speech_n with_o tryphon_n they_o every_o day_n perceive_v say_v he_o that_o we_o which_o believe_v in_o christ_n 14._o justinus_n martyr_n de_fw-fr veritate_fw-la christiana_n religionis_fw-la to_o in_fw-la 2_o pag._n 224._o lin_v 14._o can_v be_v astonish_v or_o amaze_v by_o any_o man_n or_o any_o manner_n of_o way_n let_v they_o cut_v of_o our_o head_n let_v they_o crucify_v we_o let_v they_o cast_v we_o to_o wild_a beast_n let_v they_o torment_v we_o with_o fire_n faggot_n and_o any_o other_o torment_n the_o more_o they_o do_v torment_v we_o the_o more_o do_v the_o number_n of_o christian_n grow_v and_o increase_v no_o otherwise_o than_o when_o man_n priune_n and_o dress_v a_o vine_n or_o vineyard_n they_o do_v it_o to_o make_v it_o more_o fruitful_a and_o plentiful_a for_o the_o vine_n or_o vinyard_n which_o god_n have_v plant_v and_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v his_o own_o people_n these_o be_v in_o that_o place_n almost_o justinus_n his_o own_o word_n and_o very_o we_o learn_v by_o our_o own_o experience_n that_o so_o many_o cruel_a persecution_n murder_n and_o slaughter_n of_o the_o martyr_n have_v be_v as_o it_o be_v so_o many_o seal_n in_o our_o heart_n to_o seal_v therein_o the_o holy_a gospel_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o a_o good_a doctor_n have_v very_o right_o say_v that_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o martyr_n be_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o church_n the_o eight_o point_n what_o be_v the_o cause_n for_o which_o the_o church_n be_v afflict_v and_o persecute_v of_o the_o wicked_a we_o may_v very_o well_o say_v and_o right_o confess_v that_o we_o do_v just_o deserve_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o sin_n we_o have_v commit_v to_o be_v afflict_v by_o god_n and_o persecute_v of_o the_o world_n etc._n levit._fw-la 26.14.15_o etc._n etc._n for_o we_o read_v in_o leviticus_fw-la how_o god_n threaten_v his_o people_n to_o send_v upon_o they_o war_n plague_n pestilence_n famine_n and_o other_o his_o rod_n if_o they_o yield_v not_o themselves_o obedient_a unto_o his_o commandment_n etc._n isaiah_n 5.2.3_o etc._n etc._n and_o in_o isaiah_n he_o speak_v after_o this_o manner_n you_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n say_v he_o and_o you_o man_n of_o judah_n judge_v i_o pray_v you_o between_o i_o and_o my_o vineyard_n what_o can_v i_o have_v do_v any_o more_o to_o my_o vinyarde_n that_o i_o have_v not_o do_v unto_o it_o i_o have_v hedge_v
it_o and_o gather_v out_o the_o stone_n of_o it_o and_o have_v plant_v it_o with_o the_o best_a plant_n and_o build_v a_o tower_n in_o the_o midst_n thereof_o and_o make_v a_o wine_n press_v therein_o look_v that_o it_o shall_v bring_v forth_o grape_n but_o in_o steed_n of_o grape_n it_o bring_v forth_o wild_a grape_n and_o now_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o what_o i_o will_v do_v to_o my_o vineyard_n i_o will_v take_v away_o the_o hedge_n thereof_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v eat_v up_o i_o will_v break_v the_o wall_n thereof_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v tread_v down_o and_o i_o will_v lay_v it_o waste_v 24.3.4.5_o isaiah_n 24.3.4.5_o etc._n etc._n and_o again_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v clean_o empty_v and_o utter_o spoil_v the_o earth_n shall_v lament_v and_o vade_v away_o for_o the_o inhabitant_n thereof_o have_v transgress_v the_o law_n they_o have_v change_v the_o ordinance_n and_o have_v break_v the_o everlasting_a covenaunt_n therefore_o shall_v the_o curse_n devour_v the_o earth_n for_o the_o inhabitant_n thereof_o have_v do_v wicked_o and_o therefore_o shall_v the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n burn_v and_o few_o man_n shall_v be_v leave_v therein_o etc._n jerem._n 25.8.9_o etc._n etc._n also_o in_o jeremiah_n because_o you_o have_v not_o hear_v my_o word_n behold_v i_o will_v send_v and_o take_v to_o i_o all_o the_o family_n of_o the_o north_n and_o nabuchadnezzar_n the_o king_n of_o babel_n my_o servant_n and_o i_o will_v bring_v they_o against_o this_o land_n and_o against_o the_o inhabitant_n thereof_o and_o against_o all_o these_o nation_n round_o about_o and_o i_o will_v destroy_v they_o and_o make_v they_o a_o astonishment_n a_o hiss_a and_o a_o continual_a desolation_n in_o this_o place_n 10.5_o isaiah_n 10.5_o the_o lord_n call_v nabuchadnezzar_n his_o servant_n as_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o call_v saneherib_n or_o ashur_n the_o rod_n of_o his_o wrath_n because_o he_o serve_v himself_o with_o prince_n tyrant_n and_o wicked_a magistrate_n and_o use_v they_o that_o he_o may_v by_o they_o punish_v the_o ungodliness_n and_o unthankfulness_n of_o his_o people_n 59.2_o isaiah_n 59.2_o wherefore_o isaiah_n speak_v excellent_o well_o that_o our_o iniquity_n have_v make_v a_o division_n or_o separate_v between_o god_n and_o us._n and_o therefore_o when_o we_o be_v afflict_v and_o persecute_v we_o ought_v to_o confess_v and_o acknowledge_v that_o god_n by_o that_o mean_a punish_v we_o as_o we_o in_o deed_n have_v right_o deserve_v it_o yet_o all_o this_o notwithstanding_o we_o have_v to_o consider_v and_o weigh_v a_o other_o cause_n for_o which_o the_o world_n persecute_v we_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o great_a comfort_n unto_o we_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o our_o cross_n and_o martyrdom_n for_o in_o the_o first_o place_n the_o world_n in_o persecute_v we_o look_v not_o to_o our_o sin_n but_o to_o that_o religion_n which_o we_o make_v profession_n of_o which_o religion_n in_o deed_n the_o world_n reject_v and_o persecute_v because_o it_o know_v not_o the_o author_n thereof_o and_o because_o it_o be_v altogether_o contrary_a to_o his_o manner_n and_o perverse_a and_o wicked_a order_n of_o life_n and_o conversation_n even_o as_o jesus_n christ_n have_v foretell_v the_o same_o and_o make_v his_o disciple_n to_o see_v it_o 3.19.20_o john_n 3.19.20_o when_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o this_o be_v the_o condemnation_n that_o light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o man_n love_v darkness_n rather_o than_o light_v because_o their_o deed_n be_v evil_a for_o every_o man_n that_o evil_a do_v hate_v the_o light_n neither_o come_v to_o light_n lest_o his_o deed_n shall_v be_v reprove_v 15.20.21_o john_n 15.20.21_o also_o if_o they_o have_v persecute_v i_o they_o will_v persecute_v you_o also_o but_o all_o these_o thing_n will_v they_o do_v unto_o you_o for_o my_o name_n sake_n because_o they_o have_v not_o know_v he_o that_o send_v i_o 17.14_o john_n 17.14_o and_o again_o father_n i_o have_v give_v they_o thy_o word_n and_o the_o world_n have_v hate_v they_o because_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o world_n as_o i_o be_o not_o of_o the_o world_n hereby_o we_o may_v see_v that_o the_o right_n and_o very_a cause_n of_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o plain_a profession_n of_o the_o truth_n righteousness_n and_o word_n of_o god_n as_o saint_n paul_n say_v that_o that_o all_o they_o which_o will_v live_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n or_o godly_a in_o christ_n jesus_n 3.12_o 2._o timo._n 3.12_o shall_v suffer_v persecution_n and_o also_o what_o shall_v be_v our_o consolation_n and_o comfort_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o cross_n if_o this_o point_n be_v not_o socrates_n socrates_n the_o answer_n which_o socrates_n make_v to_o his_o wife_n be_v very_o apt_a and_o fit_a for_o the_o purpose_n she_o lament_v because_o they_o put_v he_o to_o death_n wrongful_o but_o he_o be_v somewhat_o move_v answer_v that_o it_o be_v better_a for_o he_o to_o die_v a_o innocent_a &_o without_o cause_n than_o if_o he_o have_v offend_v but_o how_o much_o great_a matter_n and_o just_a cause_n have_v we_o of_o comfort_n and_o joy_n see_v we_o know_v that_o god_n of_o his_o unspeakable_a gentleness_n goodness_n &_o mercy_n bury_v all_o our_o sin_n give_v we_o over_o or_o leave_v we_o but_o for_o a_o time_n to_o suffer_v unjust_a persecution_n to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o bear_v the_o cross_n with_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v communicate_v also_o and_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o glory_n with_o he_o the_o punishment_n saint_n augustine_n have_v say_v make_v not_o a_o martyr_n but_o the_o cause_n august_n august_n and_o the_o devil_n have_v as_o well_o his_o witness_n and_o martyr_n as_o jesus_n christ_n have_v he_o in_o former_a time_n there_o be_v heretic_n which_o brag_v much_o and_o boast_a wondrous_o under_o the_o shadow_n &_o colour_v that_o man_n persecute_v they_o and_o at_o this_o day_n the_o anabaptist_n do_v in_o that_o behalf_n the_o very_a self_n same_o thing_n yea_o and_o that_o so_o far_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o account_v themselves_o bless_v and_o happy_a 5.10_o math._n 5.10_o but_o we_o must_v mark_v what_o the_o scripture_n say_v bless_a be_v they_o thus_o say_v jesus_n christ_n which_o suffer_v persecution_n for_o righteousness_n sake_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 6.22_o luk._n 6.22_o bless_a be_v you_o when_o man_n hate_v you_o &_o when_o they_o separate_v you_o &_o revile_v you_o &_o put_v out_o your_o name_n as_o evil_a for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n sake_n if_o you_o be_v rail_v upon_o for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n say_v saint_n peter_n 4.14.15.16_o 1._o pet._n 4.14.15.16_o bless_v be_v you_o for_o the_o spirit_n of_o glory_n and_o of_o god_n rest_v upon_o you_o which_o on_o their_o part_n be_v evil_a speak_v of_o but_o on_o your_o part_n be_v glorify_v but_o let_v none_o of_o you_o suffer_v as_o a_o murderer_n or_o as_o a_o thief_n or_o as_o a_o evil_a doer_n or_o as_o a_o covetous_a person_n of_o other_o man_n good_n or_o as_o a_o busy_a body_n in_o other_o man_n matter_n but_o if_o any_o man_n suffer_v as_o a_o christian_a let_v he_o not_o be_v ashamed_a but_o let_v he_o glorify_v god_n in_o this_o behalf_n and_o this_o be_v the_o mark_n or_o badge_n by_o which_o the_o scripture_n discern_v the_o lord_n true_a martyr_n from_o other_o that_o suffer_v for_o the_o wicked_a man_n and_o ungodlie_a person_n do_v in_o deed_n suffer_v persecution_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n it_o so_o fall_v out_o that_o they_o can_v boast_v themselves_o for_o all_o that_o to_o be_v true_a martyr_n neither_o by_o consequent_a that_o they_o be_v bless_v for_o they_o suffer_v not_o for_o righteousness_n sake_n neither_o to_o maintain_v god_n truth_n as_o do_v the_o martyr_n and_o witness_n of_o jesus_n christ_n moreover_o we_o ought_v to_o mark_v that_o our_o good_a god_n show_v we_o great_a grace_n and_o advaunce_v we_o to_o singular_a honour_n when_o he_o vouchsafe_v we_o meet_v and_o worthy_a to_o suffer_v any_o thing_n for_o his_o name_n sake_n when_o as_o he_o may_v very_o just_o if_o he_o will_v have_v pursue_v we_o with_o rigour_n nay_o if_o he_o will_v have_v proceed_v against_o we_o by_o justice_n have_v punish_v we_o with_o all_o kind_n and_o sort_n of_o affliction_n send_v they_o to_o we_o and_o lay_v the_o same_o upon_o us._n wherein_o he_o deal_v with_o we_o as_o if_o a_o king_n shall_v take_v from_o the_o gibbet_n or_o gallow_n some_o man_n who_o have_v right_o deserve_v to_o be_v bind_v thereto_o and_o hang_v thereon_o and_o yet_o will_v set_v and_o appoint_v he_o among_o the_o chief_a captain_n of_o his_o order_n that_o he_o may_v go_v to_o war_n and_o employ_v he_o for_o the_o maintenance_n and_o defence_n of_o his_o crown_n and_o of_o his_o kingdom_n for_o who_o or_o
we_o so_o great_a a_o reward_n and_o hire_v in_o heaven_n shall_v we_o say_v that_o our_o death_n be_v wicked_a and_o accurse_v when_o he_o himself_o by_o his_o sacred_a and_o holy_a 14.13_o reve._n 14.13_o mouth_n have_v pronounce_v the_o same_o bless_a or_o else_o that_o when_o we_o die_v for_o christ_n jesus_n his_o name_n we_o shall_v be_v curse_v when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n pronounce_v we_o bless_v wherefore_o let_v we_o not_o stay_v ourselves_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o be_v so_o much_o blind_v that_o she_o see_v not_o life_n in_o death_n neither_o blessedness_n in_o the_o curse_n but_o let_v we_o behold_v with_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o be_v full_o resolve_v of_o this_o that_o the_o way_n and_o mean_a to_o make_v we_o conformeable_a and_o like_a to_o our_o head_n jesus_n christ_n be_v to_o carry_v and_o bear_v with_o patience_n our_o cross_n after_o he_o for_o as_o saint_n paul_n say_v we_o must_v suffer_v with_o jesus_n christ_n 17._o rom._n 8._o 17._o that_o we_o may_v also_o be_v glorify_v with_o he_o the_o eleven_o point_n what_o be_v the_o end_n which_o persecutor_n have_v have_v church_n example_n of_o the_o punishment_n &_o vengeance_n of_o god_n against_o the_o persecutor_n of_o the_o church_n experience_n teach_v we_o that_o there_o be_v yet_o never_o any_o tyrant_n with_o who_o it_o go_v well_o at_o the_o last_o in_o band_v and_o set_v himself_o against_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n give_v we_o also_o a_o faithful_a testimony_n and_o a_o assure_a witness_n thereof_o as_o also_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n itself_o god_n have_v will_v and_o appoint_v that_o the_o issue_n and_o end_n of_o the_o persecutor_n of_o his_o church_n shall_v be_v put_v in_o order_n and_o declare_v by_o write_v for_o a_o testimony_n of_o his_o wrath_n and_o fury_n against_o they_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o example_n of_o his_o vengeance_n may_v be_v know_v to_o they_o that_o come_v after_o that_o thereby_o they_o may_v be_v bridle_v and_o keep_v in_o and_o not_o exercise_v cruelty_n against_o his_o faithful_a people_n unless_o they_o will_v be_v most_o severe_o and_o sharp_o punish_v as_o their_o predecessor_n be_v to_o the_o end_n also_o that_o christian_n live_v holy_o shall_v be_v comfort_v in_o this_o that_o their_o keeper_n and_o defender_n be_v in_o heaven_n who_o see_v and_o know_v all_o their_o oppression_n to_o take_v vengeance_n thereof_o in_o time_n and_o place_n as_o to_o himself_o seem_v good_a wherefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o show_v here_o some_o example_n touch_v the_o issue_n &_o end_n of_o tyrant_n and_o persecutor_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o first_o of_o pharaoh_n and_o of_o his_o egyptian_n it_o be_v write_v that_o they_o pursue_v the_o israelite_n be_v all_o overwhelm_v and_o drown_v in_o the_o sea_n so_o that_o there_o remain_v not_o of_o they_o 19.35_o pharaoh_n exod._n 14.6.7.8.9.28_o saneherib_n 2._o kin._n 19.35_o so_o much_o as_o one_o alone_a although_o they_o be_v a_o very_a great_a number_n zennacherib_n and_o his_o assyrian_n make_v war_n upon_o israel_n do_v not_o less_o feel_v by_o experience_n god_n revenge_a hand_n for_o they_o be_v before_o jerusalem_n and_o besiege_v it_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n go_v forth_o and_o slay_v a_o hundred_o fourscore_o and_o five_o thousand_o man_n of_o those_o that_o besiege_v it_o and_o as_o concern_v zennacherib_n himself_o he_o at_v that_o time_n escape_v and_o go_v to_o dwell_v at_o niniveh_n but_o as_o he_o worship_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o his_o idol_n he_o be_v slay_v by_o his_o two_o son_n adramilech_n and_o sharezer_n antiochus_n what_o end_n have_v he_o 9.4_o antiochus_n 2._o macha_n 9.4_o for_o all_o the_o oppression_n &_o cruelty_n which_o he_o exercise_v against_o the_o jew_n after_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o murder_n which_o he_o have_v commit_v &_o that_o in_o his_o pride_n he_o have_v say_v that_o he_o will_v make_v jerusalem_n a_o common_a butchery_n &_o bury_a place_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n strike_v he_o with_o a_o innumerable_a and_o invincible_a plague_n so_o that_o a_o horrible_a grief_n take_v he_o in_o the_o bowel_n and_o grievous_a torment_n within_o in_o his_o body_n he_o notwithstanding_o cease_v not_o for_o all_o this_o from_o his_o malice_n but_o have_v his_o heart_n kindle_v &_o set_v on_o fire_n against_o the_o jew_n and_o hasten_v his_o journey_n to_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n there_o to_o execute_v his_o purpose_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o go_v over_o hasty_o &_o violent_o he_o fall_v from_o the_o chariot_n and_o hurt_v himself_o sore_o in_o the_o member_n and_o part_n of_o his_o body_n so_o that_o all_o his_o body_n be_v bruise_v &_o in_o the_o same_o body_n be_v so_o great_a corruption_n that_o worm_n issue_v and_o come_v out_o of_o it_o and_o his_o flesh_n while_o he_o be_v alive_a fall_v of_o from_o the_o bone_n by_o piecemeal_o through_o pain_n and_o torment_v insomuche_o that_o his_o army_n be_v greeve_v at_o the_o smell_n or_o stinch_v of_o his_o corruption_n and_o rottenness_n and_o he_o himself_o also_o not_o be_v able_a any_o long_o to_o endure_v the_o same_o die_v like_o a_o murderer_n and_o blasphemer_n of_o a_o miserable_a death_n great_a herod_n the_o great_a herode_fw-la the_o great_a after_o that_o he_o have_v commit_v many_o execrable_a and_o detestable_a offence_n against_o the_o innocent_a people_n end_v not_o his_o day_n but_o that_o the_o vengeance_n of_o god_n be_v horrible_o and_o fearful_o kindle_v against_o he_o for_o he_o be_v torment_v with_o many_o and_o very_o cruel_a sickness_n neither_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o if_o he_o have_v have_v hangman_n or_o tormentor_n always_o beat_v his_o body_n both_o within_o and_o without_o till_o that_o at_o the_o last_o he_o die_v of_o a_o violent_a and_o cruel_a death_n and_o behold_v here_o what_o josephus_n have_v say_v thereof_o judaeor_fw-la josephus_n lib._n 17._o cap._n 8._o de_fw-la antiquitat_fw-la judaeor_fw-la the_o disease_n and_o sickness_n of_o the_o king_n increase_v wax_v more_o sharp_a and_o god_n manifest_o and_o open_o show_v that_o he_o punish_v he_o for_o his_o ungodliness_n for_o he_o be_v burn_v with_o a_o very_a slow_a heat_n neither_o can_v any_o man_n perceive_v that_o heat_n without_o but_o he_o himself_o feel_v it_o within_o because_o that_o it_o gnaw_v his_o entrails_n and_o bowel_n moreover_o he_o be_v so_o hungry_a that_o he_o take_v no_o leisure_n to_o chew_v his_o meat_n but_o devour_v and_o swallow_v up_o all_o that_o enter_v into_o his_o mouth_n and_o so_o they_o must_v cast_v meat_n continual_o into_o his_o throat_n beside_o this_o he_o have_v his_o inward_a part_n full_a of_o sore_n hurt_n and_o bile_n and_o be_v torment_v with_o the_o colic_n of_o passion_n he_o have_v his_o foot_n puff_v up_o and_o swell_v with_o a_o moist_a kind_n of_o fleme_n he_o have_v also_o his_o nose_n swell_v his_o privy_a part_n and_o member_n be_v rot_v &_o full_a of_o worm_n and_o his_o breath_n be_v very_o stink_v insomuch_o that_o none_o dare_v come_v nigh_o he_o beside_o all_o this_o he_o have_v a_o certain_a shrinck_v or_o draw_v together_o of_o the_o sinew_n and_o he_o have_v much_o ado_n to_o take_v breath_n wherefore_o all_o they_o who_o make_v profession_n to_o device_n and_o foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v be_v of_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o opinion_n and_o resolve_v all_o upon_o this_o that_o this_o be_v a_o very_a punishment_n and_o vengeance_n send_v from_o god_n who_o punish_v he_o for_o this_o because_o he_o have_v so_o many_o sort_n and_o way_n violate_v the_o honour_n &_o profane_v the_o reverence_n which_o he_o ought_v to_o god_n &_o the_o love_n which_o he_o ought_v to_o his_o wife_n and_o child_n and_o so_o he_o die_v miserable_o agrippa_n herode_fw-la agrippa_n herode_fw-la agrippa_n the_o son_n of_o aristobulus_n who_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o foresay_a herode_fw-la the_o great_a by_o his_o second_o wife_n name_v marianne_n and_o put_v to_o death_n by_o he_o have_v cruel_o torment_v and_o persecute_v the_o church_n etc._n act._n 12.1.2.3.4.18.19_o etc._n etc._n and_o namely_o put_v saint_n james_n to_o death_n be_v also_o at_o the_o last_o lift_v up_o to_o the_o high_a of_o his_o honour_n clothe_v in_o his_o kingly_a apparel_n and_o set_v upon_o the_o judicial_a seat_n make_v a_o oration_n to_o the_o people_n and_o the_o people_n cry_v out_o this_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o a_o man_n he_o i_o say_v be_v strike_v sudden_o by_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v gnaw_v and_o eat_v with_o worm_n and_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n antipas_n herode_fw-la antipas_n herod_n antipas_n the_o tetrarch_n of_o galilee_n
his_o mirror_n or_o glass_n the_o thirteen_o book_n 2._o vincentius_n in_o specul_fw-la lib._n 13._o cap._n 2._o marcel_n histo_fw-la 2._o and_o second_o chapter_n notwithstanding_o that_o book_n which_o be_v call_v the_o sea_n of_o history_n say_v that_o be_v take_v at_o the_o forename_a marsilles_n he_o there_o hang_v himself_o with_o a_o halter_n be_v threscore_a year_n old_a behold_v a_o summarie_n and_o short_a description_n of_o the_o horrible_a punishment_n which_o the_o lord_n send_v upon_o the_o ten_o emperor_n under_o who_o and_o in_o who_o day_n the_o ten_o great_a persecution_n against_o the_o church_n fall_v out_o and_o be_v commit_v now_o as_o the_o emperor_n which_o succeed_v those_o do_v not_o all_o withhold_v themselves_o from_o persecute_v the_o poor_a christian_n so_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n be_v not_o shorten_v but_o that_o punishment_n and_o vengeance_n be_v execute_v upon_o the_o persecutor_n for_o that_o which_o saint_n cyprian_a say_v in_o the_o apology_n or_o defence_n he_o make_v against_o demetrianus_n the_o governor_n demetrianum_n cyprianus_n contra_fw-la demetrianum_n be_v very_o true_a to_o wit_n that_o very_o hardly_o there_o be_v any_o man_n at_o any_o time_n who_o through_o wickedness_n lift_v up_o himself_o against_o the_o christian_n but_o that_o incontinent_o thereupon_o god_n vengeance_n and_o justice_n follow_v he_o and_o pursue_v he_o therefore_o 23_o galerius_n volaterran_n li._n 23_o galerius_n a_o cruel_a emperor_n or_o rather_o in_o deed_n a_o tyrant_n have_v very_o well_o try_v and_o prove_v the_o same_o for_o have_v continue_v and_o increase_v the_o persecution_n begin_v by_o diocletian_n and_o have_v with_o all_o manner_n of_o punishment_n torment_v the_o christian_n both_o cruel_o and_o furious_o at_o the_o last_o have_v reign_v thirteen_o year_n not_o be_v able_a to_o abide_v the_o torment_n and_o pain_n of_o a_o certain_a sickness_n wherewith_o he_o be_v take_v and_o hold_v through_o impatiency_n he_o slay_v himself_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o some_o say_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o sickness_n he_o put_v his_o physician_n to_o death_n because_o they_o can_v not_o heal_v he_o of_o which_o one_o declare_v &_o say_v that_o his_o disease_n proceed_v from_o the_o vengeance_n of_o god_n the_o death_n of_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la apostata_fw-la julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la may_v very_o well_o also_o testify_v what_o end_n the_o persecucutor_n of_o god_n child_n may_v look_v &_o wait_v for_o for_o the_o history_n declare_v 23._o theoderit_fw-la lib._n 3._o cap._n 25._o volaterran_n lib._n 23._o that_o he_o continue_v the_o war_n against_o the_o persian_n which_o be_v begin_v by_o the_o emperor_n his_o predecessor_n and_o upon_o the_o way_n have_v make_v a_o vow_n again_o to_o shed_v and_o spill_v the_o christian_n blood_n and_o namely_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o to_o make_v they_o or_o set_v they_o out_o open_o as_o a_o show_n in_o some_o solemn_a place_n if_o he_o come_v again_o victorious_a and_o a_o conqueror_n as_o he_o be_v enter_v into_o a_o desert_n and_o wilderness_n he_o and_o his_o army_n wander_v up_o and_o down_o together_o without_o guide_n or_o lead_n he_o be_v sudden_o take_v and_o strike_v with_o a_o stroke_n either_o of_o a_o arrow_n or_o a_o sword_n or_o of_o some_o other_o weapon_n for_o none_o know_v as_o the_o historiographer_n say_v wherewith_o or_o how_o he_o be_v strike_v and_o so_o die_v in_o despair_n have_v not_o as_o then_o reign_v twelve_o whole_a year_n he_o cry_v out_o with_o a_o horrible_a blasphemy_n keep_v and_o hold_v his_o blood_n which_o gush_v into_o his_o hand_n and_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o air_n say_v o_o galilean_a for_o so_o in_o desspite_n he_o be_v wont_a to_o call_v christ_n at_o the_o last_o thou_o have_v overcome_v thou_o have_v overcome_v 19_o valens_n theod._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 19_o valens_n also_o do_v very_o well_o feel_v &_o know_v the_o power_n of_o god_n vengeance_n in_o his_o miserable_a death_n it_o be_v say_v of_o he_o that_o have_v receive_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o arrian_n a_o certain_a season_n after_o that_o he_o hearken_v unto_o the_o instruction_n of_o basil_n and_o receive_v it_o but_o straight_a way_n he_o return_v to_o his_o former_a natural_a disposition_n and_o assault_v and_o set_v upon_o basil_n and_o when_o it_o so_o fall_v out_o that_o he_o can_v not_o persuade_v he_o to_o join_v or_o take_v part_n with_o the_o arrian_n he_o command_v that_o a_o law_n and_o decree_n shall_v be_v make_v for_o his_o banishment_n and_o when_o he_o be_v mind_v to_o subscribe_v the_o say_a decree_n the_o pen_n be_v find_v bruise_v after_o a_o sudden_a and_o marvelous_a manner_n so_o that_o he_o can_v not_o therewith_o make_v a_o stroke_n only_o or_o sign_n of_o a_o letter_n they_o bring_v unto_o he_o the_o second_o pen_n yea_o even_o the_o third_o and_o it_o fall_v out_o in_o they_o as_o with_o the_o first_o and_o notwithstanding_o he_o yet_o endeavour_v to_o undersigne_v subscribe_v &_o ratify_v that_o decree_n but_o he_o feel_v that_o his_o right_a hand_n shake_v and_o tremble_v 40._o socrates_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 36._o theodoret._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 36._o sozomen_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 40._o and_o then_o be_v fear_v he_o tear_v the_o paper_n but_o short_o after_o he_o die_v wicked_o for_o in_o a_o certain_a battle_n which_o he_o have_v against_o the_o goth_n who_o rebel_v against_o he_o be_v enforce_v thereto_o through_o famine_n and_o hunger_n he_o be_v hurt_v with_o a_o arrow_n wherefore_o he_o flee_v and_o withdraw_v himself_o into_o a_o small_a graunge_a or_o farm_n house_n in_o the_o field_n with_o some_o of_o his_o people_n and_o be_v close_o or_o hide_a there_o the_o goth_n set_v fire_n on_o it_o not_o know_v that_o valens_n be_v therein_o and_o there_o he_o be_v burn_v all_o alive_a and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o which_o shall_v come_v after_o may_v have_v a_o more_o evident_a testimony_n that_o this_o be_v in_o deed_n a_o punishment_n send_v from_o god_n and_o that_o also_o in_o this_o wicked_a person_n there_o may_v always_o be_v have_v a_o example_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n he_o remain_v without_o any_o burial_n at_o all_o but_o when_o will_v it_o be_v that_o we_o shall_v make_v a_o end_n if_o we_o will_v large_o pursue_v and_o recite_v the_o catalogue_n or_o beadrole_n as_o you_o will_v say_v of_o tyrant_n and_o persecutor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o for_o a_o just_a recompense_n of_o their_o cruelty_n have_v be_v punish_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o die_v miserable_o we_o shall_v not_o want_v example_n of_o former_a age_n neither_o yet_o of_o our_o time_n for_o god_n have_v always_o have_v care_n over_o his_o church_n maintain_v it_o and_o punish_v the_o riotte_n and_o murder_n commit_v against_o it_o yea_o he_o will_v always_o maintain_v it_o and_o will_v exercise_v and_o execute_v his_o justice_n upon_o they_o which_o will_v oppress_v it_o because_o he_o account_v it_o as_o dear_a 8._o zachari_fw-la 2._o 8._o as_o the_o apple_n of_o his_o eye_n which_o shall_v bring_v unto_o we_o a_o singular_a comfort_n and_o instruction_n for_o it_o serve_v well_o to_o comfort_v we_o when_o we_o understand_v that_o we_o have_v a_o keeper_n and_o defender_n in_o heaven_n who_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o our_o affliction_n will_v not_o forsake_v we_o no_o not_o then_o when_o it_o seem_v unto_o we_o that_o the_o whole_a world_n conspire_v and_o arise_v against_o us._n on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o ought_v to_o receive_v and_o take_v instruction_n thereby_o because_o that_o we_o hear_v that_o god_n take_v vengeance_n in_o his_o good_a time_n and_o as_o please_v himself_o upon_o they_o which_o persecute_v his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o shall_v spoil_v ourselves_o of_o and_o cast_v far_o from_o we_o all_o particular_a affection_n or_o motion_n of_o revengement_n and_o shall_v leave_v the_o judgement_n of_o our_o cause_n unto_o god_n to_o who_o alone_o as_o he_o say_v vengeance_n to_o repay_v the_o same_o 12.19_o deut._n 32.35_o rom._n 12.19_o do_v belong_v when_o he_o shall_v see_v good_a and_o meet_a and_o notwithstanding_o the_o tyrant_n and_o persecutor_n have_v to_o learn_v by_o the_o above_o say_a example_n to_o have_v in_o horror_n and_o wonderful_a fear_n the_o great_a judgement_n of_o god_n and_o to_o know_v that_o albeit_o god_n do_v for_o a_o time_n defer_v and_o put_v of_o the_o punishment_n of_o those_o which_o raging_o and_o furious_o fall_v upon_o his_o well-beloved_a saint_n yet_o such_o be_v not_o for_o all_o that_o any_o whit_n the_o more_o bless_a the_o fury_n and_o wrath_n of_o god_n as_o one_o have_v say_v walk_v and_o go_v very_o soft_o history_n valerius_n maximus_n in_o his_o history_n but_o after_o it_o have_v be_v long_a time_n defer_v or_o foreslow_v it_o do_v at_o the_o last_o
recompense_n that_o slowness_n as_o it_o be_v &_o long_o forebear_v by_o very_o terrible_a torment_n yea_o it_o come_v and_o draw_v nigh_o by_o little_a and_o little_a with_o foot_n of_o wool_n as_o it_o be_v but_o be_v once_o arrive_v and_o come_v it_o declare_v that_o it_o have_v a_o arm_n of_o iron_n to_o bruise_v in_o piece_n &_o beat_v down_o all_o unrepentant_a wicked_a person_n o_o bless_a be_v he_o as_o a_o certain_a poet_n have_v say_v who_o be_v make_v wise_a by_o a_o other_o man_n danger_n and_o example_n i_o wish_v that_o this_o may_v open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o man_n of_o our_o time_n who_o do_v open_o band_n and_o set_v themselves_o against_o god_n and_o his_o church_n for_o some_o there_o be_v who_o be_v so_o arrogant_a and_o presumptuous_a that_o they_o take_v pleasure_n &_o delight_n in_o no_o other_o thing_n then_o to_o murder_v and_o persecute_v poor_a innocent_a people_n &_o as_o though_o they_o have_v make_v a_o covenant_n or_o agreement_n with_o death_n itself_o as_o isaiah_n say_v they_o lift_v up_o themselves_o above_o the_o cloud_n 28.15_o isaiah_n 28.15_o neither_o have_v they_o any_o taste_n or_o feel_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o they_o harden_v themselves_o in_o a_o curse_a kind_n of_o licentiousness_n but_o so_o much_o there_o be_v that_o their_o end_n if_o they_o amend_v not_o shall_v make_v manifest_a a_o alteration_n and_o change_v not_o look_v for_o by_o which_o the_o lord_n when_o so_o seem_v good_a unto_o himself_o know_v right_o to_o execute_v his_o own_o judgement_n yea_o that_o his_o hand_n although_o it_o appear_v not_o &_o that_o it_o seem_v as_o though_o he_o have_v it_o shut_v up_o in_o his_o bosom_n be_v notwithstanding_o nigh_o to_o overwhelm_v they_o and_o where_o as_o they_o lift_v up_o themselves_o against_o heaven_n that_o he_o will_v in_o a_o moment_n and_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n make_v they_o to_o fall_v backward_o to_o the_o earth_n yea_o and_o cast_v they_o headlong_o to_o the_o depth_n or_o bottom_n of_o hell_n o_o that_o tyrant_n &_o persecutor_n will_v think_v well_o of_o these_o matter_n but_o what_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n do_v to_o hard_a heart_n and_o to_o blind_a eye_n the_o wicked_a become_v more_o proud_a through_o the_o prosperity_n which_o they_o have_v in_o this_o world_n as_o though_o that_o no_o punishment_n for_o their_o cruelty_n be_v prepare_v for_o they_o it_o fare_v with_o they_o as_o with_o dionysius_n the_o tyrant_n who_o after_o he_o have_v spoil_v and_o rob_v a_o temple_n go_v to_o the_o sea_n and_o see_v he_o have_v a_o good_a wind_n begin_v to_o say_v that_o the_o god_n favour_v church_n robber_n or_o spoiler_n of_o temple_n so_o likewise_o these_o man_n when_o they_o behold_v that_o their_o offence_n remain_v unpunished_a &_o that_o their_o villainy_n &_o wickedness_n be_v not_o correct_v immediate_o they_o give_v themselves_o over_o to_o work_v wickedness_n outrageous_o and_o to_o conclude_v in_o their_o carnal_a &_o fleshly_a understanding_n that_o there_o be_v no_o judgement_n of_o god_n at_o all_o and_o that_o he_o have_v no_o punishment_n ready_a and_o prepare_v for_o their_o iniquity_n but_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n determine_v and_o pronounce_v the_o quite_o and_o clean_o contrary_a so_o ordinary_a and_o common_a experience_n of_o the_o example_n of_o god_n wrath_n do_v sufficient_o show_v unto_o we_o that_o when_o god_n spare_v the_o wicked_a persecutor_n of_o his_o people_n for_o a_o time_n and_o make_v as_o though_o he_o seem_v not_o to_o look_v upon_o their_o extortion_n outrage_n and_o violence_n it_o be_v not_o because_o he_o be_v favourable_a unto_o they_o neither_o because_o he_o reach_v they_o his_o hand_n and_o help_v they_o for_o it_o can_v otherwise_o be_v but_o that_o one_o day_n as_o he_o be_v a_o just_a judge_n he_o will_v give_v unto_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o good_a and_o salvation_n of_o his_o child_n such_o recompense_n and_o hire_v as_o they_o shall_v have_v deserve_v first_o in_o this_o life_n if_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o they_o may_v shameful_o and_o wicked_o end_v their_o day_n and_o afterwards_o in_o the_o other_o world_n that_o they_o may_v utter_o perish_v if_o they_o repent_v and_o amend_v not_o in_o this_o life_n and_o may_v be_v torment_v eternal_o in_o hell_n fire_n where_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o weep_v and_o wail_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n finis_fw-la ¶_o a_o table_n contain_v the_o principal_a matter_n handle_v in_o this_o present_a book_n a_o affliction_n and_o the_o cause_n thereof_o page_n 333._o etc._n etc._n affliction_n of_o the_o church_n 274._o affliction_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o end_n which_o god_n respect_v therein_o 340._o &_o affliction_n of_o the_o church_n increase_v when_o the_o deliverance_n thereof_o be_v nigh_o 325._o affliction_n of_o the_o church_n be_v always_o order_v and_o govern_v by_o god_n hand_n 321._o affliction_n come_v not_o without_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n 318._o affliction_n and_o their_o issue_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o faithful_a 345._o affliction_n and_o their_o issue_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o persecutor_n 357._o ancient_n 133._o antiochus_n 359_o apostles_n 128._o archebishop_n 69._o 144._o aurelian_a 304_o 372._o augustine_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n 222._o ancient_a father_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o pope_n 92._o etc._n etc._n b_o bbaptisme_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n 115._o bishop_n 69._o 133._o 143._o bishop_n universal_a be_v a_o title_n of_o antichrist_n when_o it_o be_v give_v to_o man_n 94._o c_o call_v see_v vocation_n cardinal_n 146._o censure_n 247._o censure_n three_o end_n thereof_o 252._o censure_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v apply_v with_o out_o respect_n of_o person_n 255._o chaplain_n 140._o counsel_n 202._o consistory_n 241._o correction_n and_o censure_n 247._o curate_n 142._o church_n whence_o it_o come_v 2._o church_n how_o many_o way_n take_v 2._o church_n which_o be_v true_a have_v two_o substantial_a mark_n 15._o church_n and_o her_o continuance_n 55._o church_n and_o her_o head_n be_v jesus_n christ_n alone_o 68_o church_n and_o her_o holiness_n 184._o church_n compare_v to_o a_o palm_n tree_n roses_z lily_n and_o to_o a_o vine_n 332._o old_a church_n of_o rome_n what_o a_o one_o it_o be_v according_a to_o tertullian_n his_o judgement_n 106._o church_n catholic_a be_v one_o alone_o 11._o church_n catholic_a &_o invisible_a what_o it_o be_v 7._o church_n distinguish_v into_o three_o sort_n 4._o church_n in_o what_o sense_n call_v the_o pillar_n &_o ground_n of_o truth_n 200._o church_n in_o what_o sense_n say_v to_o be_v without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n 189._o church_n whether_o above_o the_o scripture_n 213._o church_n whether_o more_o old_a than_o the_o scripture_n 220._o church_n must_v not_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o great_a number_n 58._o church_n whether_o it_o may_v err_v 197._o church_n why_o call_v catholic_a 9_o church_n why_o say_v to_o be_v invisible_a 12._o church_n represent_v by_o a_o bright_a lamp_n or_o firebrand_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o burn_a or_o smoke_v furnace_n 330._o church_n represent_v by_o the_o burn_a bush_n 330._o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n 19_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n 102._o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o true_a unity_n 113._o church_n increase_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o persecution_n 330._o church_n visible_a what_o it_o be_v 14._o d_o decius_n 299.370_o deacon_n 136._o diaconiss_n 244._o dioclesian_n 305._o 373._o discipline_n necessary_a in_o the_o church_n 235._o discipline_n incroch_v nothing_o upon_o the_o magistrate_n 237._o doctor_n 132._o domitian_n 283._o 365._o donation_n of_o constantine_n to_o silvester_n 87._o e_o evangelistes_n 130._o excommunication_n &_o 3._o end_n thereof_o 252._o exposition_n of_o scripture_n and_o two_o principle_n necessary_a therein_o 20._o elder_n 135._o g_o galerius_n 376._o galen_n 302._o god_n deliver_v his_o church_n out_o of_o affliction_n when_o it_o be_v time_n 327._o god_n why_o he_o afflict_v rather_o his_o church_n than_o other_o people_n 319._o god_n why_o he_o send_v not_o succour_v to_o his_o church_n so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v afflict_v 323._o h_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v jesus_n christ_n alone_o 68_o herode_fw-la agrippa_n 362._o herode_fw-la antipas_n 362._o herode_fw-la the_o great_a 360._o high_a or_o chief_a bishop_n 97._o holiness_n of_o the_o church_n unperfect_a 187._o i_o ignorance_n excuse_v not_o 125._o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la 313._o 377._o k_o key_n in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o use_n thereof_o 79._o l_o law_n ecclesiastical_a 258._o m_o marcus_n aurelius_n 293._o 357._o maximianus_n herculien_n 305._o 373._o maximinus_n 298._o 369._o metropolitanes_n 69._o 144._o 149._o ministry_n and_o how_o much_o shall_v be_v give_v thereto_o 179._o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n ordain_v by_o god_n for_o our_o weakness_n sake_n 177._o ministry_n necessary_a in_o the_o church_n 160._o minister_n consider_v after_o two_o sort_n 180._o minister_n of_o the_o church_n &_o their_o degree_n or_o order_n 128._o miracle_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v a_o call_n 53_o multitude_n make_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o the_o church_n 58._o n_o nero._n 184._o 364._o o_o order_n of_o the_o pope_n his_o clergy_n 139._o p_o pope_n 97._o 152._o pope_n and_o his_o blasphemy_n 75._o pope_n two_o at_o rome_n at_o one_o time_n 91._o pastor_n 131._o patriarch_n 69._o 149._o paul_n shall_v rather_o be_v take_v for_o pope_n then_o saint_n peter_n 100_o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n 274._o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n ten_o great_a and_o general_a &_o a_o discourse_n thereof_o 279._o persecution_n come_v not_o without_o god_n providence_n 318._o persecution_n the_o first_o under_o nero._n 281._o persecution_n the_o second_o under_o domitian_n 283._o persecution_n the_o three_o under_o trajan_n 284._o persecution_n the_o four_o under_o marcus_n aurelius_n 293._o persecution_n the_o five_o under_o severus_n 296._o persecution_n the_o sixth_o under_o julian_n maximinus_n 298._o persecution_n the_o seven_o under_o decius_n 299._o persecution_n the_o eight_o under_o valerian_n and_o galen_n 302._o persecution_n the_o nienth_n under_o aurelian_a 304._o persecution_n the_o ten_o under_o dioclesian_n and_o maximianus_n 305._o pharaoh_n 358._o peter_n whether_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v uncertain_a 98._o peter_n be_v not_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n 71._o pilate_n 363._o pontifex_n or_o high_a bishop_n 97._o predecessor_n of_o we_o who_o die_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n whether_o save_v or_o condemn_v 126._o priest_n 140._o prophet_n 129._o parson_n 158._o s_o sabaoth_n change_v to_o the_o sunday_n 228._o sanctity_n or_o holiness_n of_o the_o church_n be_v unperfect_a 187._o sanctification_n how_o wrought_v in_o us._n 186._o sanctification_n and_o three_o degree_n of_o it_o 69._o saint_n in_o what_o fence_n we_o be_v call_v 185._o sancherib_n 358._o severus_n 296._o 269._o succession_n and_o three_o sort_n thereof_o 26._o succession_n to_o what_o end_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n the_o ancient_a doctor_n use_v a_o argument_n take_v there_o from_o 28._o sucession_n personal_a have_v some_o time_n have_v a_o breach_n in_o the_o seat_n of_o rome_n 35._o succession_n and_o call_n of_o person_n 24._o t_o trajan_n 284._o 356._o teacher_n 132._o v_o valens_n the_o emperor_n 314._o 378._o valerian_n 362._o 371._o vicar_n 140._o unity_n in_o verity_n be_v not_o in_o the_o romishe_a church_n 113._o vocation_n of_o pastor_n three_o thing_n necessary_a therein_o 39_o vocation_n ordinary_a and_o extraordinary_a 47._o finis_fw-la
that_o must_v rule_v and_o guide_v other_o that_o must_v be_v guide_v and_o govern_v in_o man_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n the_o soul_n which_o govern_v by_o reason_n the_o body_n which_o submit_v itself_o and_o obey_v otherwise_o if_o in_o a_o army_n all_o be_v soldier_n or_o all_o captain_n what_o hope_n be_v there_o of_o victory_n and_o good_a success_n if_o in_o a_o ship_n all_o shall_v be_v alike_o all_o mariner_n who_o shall_v stand_v at_o the_o helm_n who_o shall_v guide_v the_o compass_n if_o in_o a_o city_n all_o be_v equal_a who_o shall_v make_v decree_n prescribe_v law_n and_o execute_v the_o same_o if_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v a_o head_n what_o disorder_n or_o if_o the_o member_n be_v without_o a_o head_n what_o confusion_n the_o learned_a therefore_o send_v we_o to_o learn_v order_n to_o the_o heaven_n &_o to_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o angel_n among_o who_o there_o be_v degree_n angel_n archangel_n virtue_n potestates_fw-la principatus_fw-la dominationes_fw-la throni_fw-la cherubin_n seraphin_n to_o the_o sun_n to_o the_o moon_n to_o the_o star_n which_o in_o glory_n &_o brightness_n excel_v one_o another_o to_o the_o bee_n which_o have_v their_o grand_a captain_n at_o who_o buzz_n they_o go_v forth_o they_o follow_v &_o cluster_v together_o to_o the_o tree_n where_o you_o see_v of_o a_o great_a stock_n many_o branch_n arise_v and_o spring_v our_o natural_a appetite_n and_o affection_n acknowledge_v the_o government_n of_o reason_n &_o understand_v and_o so_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n there_o have_v be_v always_o governor_n and_o they_o govern_v chief_o and_o soverain_o as_o in_o the_o civil_a estate_n seth_n enos_n sem_fw-mi rule_v the_o church_n in_o their_o time_n &_o the_o church_n acknowledge_v &_o obey_v their_o government_n the_o best_a writer_n affirm_v that_o the_o first_o bear_v have_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o whole_a family_n noah_n alone_o rule_v in_o make_v and_o order_v the_o ark_n in_o which_o there_o be_v clean_o and_o unclean_a beast_n tame_a and_o savage_a of_o all_o kind_n to_o signify_v the_o church_n gather_v together_o of_o both_o jew_n &_o gentile_n and_o govern_v by_o jesus_n christ_n only_o as_o by_o a_o second_o noah_n the_o church_n under_o the_o law_n have_v diversity_n of_o order_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o sundry_a place_n in_o the_o three_o of_o number_n where_o the_o tribe_n be_v muster_v the_o three_o family_n of_o the_o gersonite_n kohathite_n merarite_n have_v their_o prince_n or_o head_n which_o they_o call_v nescha_n in_o the_o first_o of_o king_n &_o the_o 4._o azaria_n be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o levite_n obadiah_n that_o worthy_a counsellor_n meet_v with_o old_a heli_n disdain_v not_o to_o call_v he_o lord_n gregory_n nazianzen_n write_v to_o gregory_n nissien_n which_o suppose_v he_o to_o be_v angry_a because_o they_o have_v ordain_v one_o without_o his_o consent_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v no_o man_n bely_v we_o nor_o any_o of_o my_o lord_n the_o brethren_n good_a gregory_n a_o humble_a and_o simple_a man_n weigh_v not_o title_n nor_o care_v for_o any_o worldly_a honour_n but_o be_v careful_a that_o order_n shall_v be_v prescribe_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o one_o shall_v go_v before_o a_o other_o in_o honour_n s._n james_n say_v be_v not_o you_o many_o master_n and_o chrysostom_n say_v that_o equality_n of_o dignity_n and_o place_n bring_v forth_o schism_n likewise_o jerome_n write_v to_o euagrius_n say_v that_o from_o mark_n to_o dionysius_n and_o heraclas_n there_o be_v one_o always_o set_v in_o high_a place_n of_o dignity_n above_o the_o rest_n and_o this_o he_o say_v be_v to_o avoid_v schism_n which_o see_v they_o lack_v skill_n and_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o end_n since_o the_o disease_n remain_v still_o what_o great_a folly_n be_v it_o to_o condemn_v or_o refuse_v the_o remedy_n in_o the_o counsel_n call_v gangrensse_n the_o holy_a father_n assemble_v there_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o armenia_n use_v these_o word_n honoratissimis_fw-la dominis_fw-la to_o our_o most_o honourable_a lord_n the_o late_a writer_n most_o of_o they_o allow_v and_o affirm_v a_o primacy_n of_o order_n though_o not_o in_o degree_n of_o ministration_n m._n caluin_n write_v upon_o the_o 2._o cor._n &_o 10._o etsi_fw-la omne_fw-la common_a sit_fw-la etc._n etc._n although_o one_o and_o the_o same_o office_n be_v common_a to_o all_o yet_o be_v there_o degree_n of_o honour_n and_o the_o same_o author_n write_v upon_o these_o word_n out_o of_o the_o 2._o to_o the_o philipp_n sicut_fw-la patri_fw-la filius_fw-la ita_fw-la mihi_fw-la timotheus_n seruivit_fw-la in_o euamgelio_n as_o a_o father_n his_o son_n so_o have_v timothy_n serve_v i_o in_o the_o gospel_n we_o learn_v say_v he_o in_o this_o place_n that_o no_o such_o equality_n be_v among_o the_o minister_n but_o one_o do_v rule_v and_o govern_v the_o rest_n by_o counsel_n and_o authority_n again_o in_o his_o 4._o book_n 8._o chapter_n sect_n 54._o he_o say_v that_o every_o province_n have_v among_o their_o bishop_n a_o archb._n and_o that_o the_o council_n of_o nice_n do_v appoint_v 4._o patriarch_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o order_n and_o dignity_n above_o archb._n it_o be_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o discipline_n wherefore_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n by_o light_n of_o reason_n and_o by_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o distinction_n of_o degree_n &_o superiority_n be_v necessary_a in_o the_o church_n as_o without_o the_o which_o law_n will_v soon_o grow_v to_o liberty_n faith_n will_v soon_o be_v divide_v &_o the_o coat_n of_o christ_n jesu_n which_o be_v his_o church_n rend_v and_o tear_v in_o sunder_o so_o many_o fancy_n so_o many_o faith_n will_v follow_v now_o whereas_o many_o make_v much_o ado_n about_o the_o title_n of_o bishop_n metropolitan_o &_o archb._n and_o the_o scripture_n be_v still_o allege_a as_o a_o adversary_n in_o this_o quarrel_n &_o contain_v express_o no_v such_o name_n thus_o may_v they_o make_v our_o saviour_n christ_n inferior_a to_o his_o father_n concern_v his_o divinity_n because_o the_o title_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o where_o literal_o express_v although_o the_o same_o by_o sundry_a place_n may_v be_v well_o and_o just_o gather_v therefore_o to_o conclude_v to_o they_o that_o listen_v to_o be_v contentious_a vbi_fw-la de_fw-la re_fw-la constat_fw-la puerile_a est_fw-fr de_fw-fr verbolitigare_fw-la and_o to_o the_o discreet_a reader_n that_o he_o peruse_v this_o book_n to_o profit_v his_o conscience_n and_o not_o to_o please_v his_o affection_n seek_v peace_n and_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n shall_v bless_v you_o &_o increase_v his_o grace_n among_o you_o to_o the_o terror_n of_o your_o enemy_n and_o comfort_n of_o your_o soul_n amen_n a_o treaty_n of_o the_o church_n contain_v a_o true_a discourse_n in_o which_o a_o man_n may_v clear_o behold_v and_o see_v what_o be_v the_o nature_n form_n government_n and_o guide_v of_o the_o true_a church_n together_o with_o the_o infallible_a mark_n and_o token_n by_o which_o a_o man_n may_v know_v it_o and_o discern_v the_o same_o from_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o all_o other_o false_a and_o counterfeit_a congregation_n cap._n i._o of_o the_o diverse_a signification_n and_o acception_n of_o this_o word_n church_n and_o how_o the_o church_n be_v common_o distinguish_v man_n be_v accustom_v to_o say_v that_o every_o word_n which_o may_v be_v take_v in_o many_o sense_n and_o in_o diverse_a signification_n shall_v rather_o be_v distinguish_v then_o define_v for_o a_o man_n can_v not_o otherwise_o right_o declare_v the_o nature_n virtue_n and_o disposition_n of_o any_o thing_n unless_o he_o be_v first_o resolve_v of_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n in_o which_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v take_v for_o as_o much_o therefore_o as_o this_o word_n church_n be_v of_o that_o sort_n be_v a_o greek_a word_n which_o signify_v a_o assembly_n or_o congregation_n &_o be_v take_v or_o derive_v from_o a_o word_n which_o in_o that_o tongue_n signify_v to_o call_v or_o to_o cause_n to_o come_v it_o be_v meet_v and_o necessary_a that_o before_o we_o give_v the_o definition_n thereof_o we_o declare_v after_o how_o many_o sort_n man_n use_v to_o take_v it_o 1_o now_o man_n sometime_o take_v it_o for_o a_o company_n or_o assembly_n of_o wicked_a person_n as_o psalm_n 22.16_o 22.16_o psal_n 22.16_o the_o church_n or_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o wicked_a have_v enclose_v i_o and_o in_o psalm_n 26.5_o 26.5_o psal_n 26.5_o i_o have_v hate_v the_o church_n of_o the_o wicked_a that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o company_n for_o there_o be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n text_n two_o word_n which_o the_o greek_n have_v turn_v synagogue_n and_o church_n which_o do_v signify_v as_o much_o as_o a_o company_n troop_n
in_o a_o city_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o do_v it_o and_o david_n i_o shall_v have_v be_v dumb_a 39.9_o psal_n 39.9_o and_o not_o have_v open_v my_o mouth_n because_o thou_o do_v it_o so_o do_v s._n peter_n conclude_v 4.19_o 1._o pet._n 4.19_o let_v they_o that_o suffer_v according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n commit_v their_o soul_n unto_o he_o in_o well_o do_v as_o unto_o a_o faithful_a creator_n 21._o job._n 1._o 21._o hereunto_o job_n have_v regard_v also_o when_o he_o say_v the_o lord_n have_v give_v and_o the_o lord_n have_v take_v it_o bless_a be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o david_n say_v as_o i_o have_v ere_o while_o allege_v i_o shall_v have_v be_v dumb_a 39.9_o psal_n 39.9_o and_o not_o have_v open_v my_o mouth_n because_o thou_o do_v it_o also_o when_o he_o be_v revile_v rail_v upon_o and_o as_o it_o be_v curse_v by_o shimei_n suffer_v he_o say_v he_o to_o curse_v david_n 10_o 2_o sam._n i6_n 10_o for_o he_o curse_v even_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v bid_v he_o curse_n david_n who_o dare_v they_o say_v wherefore_o have_v thou_o do_v so_o here_o unto_o likewise_o jesus_n christ_n have_v regard_v when_o he_o say_v to_o pilate_n 9.12_o john_n 9.12_o thou_o can_v have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o against_o i_o except_o it_o be_v give_v thou_o from_o above_o now_o this_o point_n or_o matter_n contain_v three_o argument_n and_o reason_n to_o comfort_v we_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o our_o cross_n and_o trouble_n the_o first_o be_v that_o we_o be_v not_o in_o or_o under_o the_o power_n of_o fortune_n or_o of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n the_o second_o that_o god_n do_v just_o and_o for_o good_a cause_n afflict_v we_o for_o as_o he_o be_v faithful_a and_o righteous_a in_o all_o his_o work_n so_o he_o do_v not_o send_v or_o lay_v upon_o we_o any_o affliction_n 16.25_o mat._n 10.19.26.28_o etc._n etc._n psal_n 33.4_o 1._o cor._n 10.13_o rom._n 8.28_o heb._n 12.11_o psalm_n 126._o throughout_o pecial_o vers_fw-la 5.6_o john_n 16.20_o luk._n 16.25_o but_o that_o which_o we_o have_v indeed_o deserve_v the_o 3._o that_o see_v the_o affliction_n we_o suffer_v come_v from_o god_n our_o father_n it_o shall_v not_o overwhelm_v or_o overthrow_v we_o but_o shall_v turn_v to_o our_o great_a good_a joy_n &_o salvation_n now_o if_o the_o cross_n fall_v not_o from_o our_o shoulder_n so_o long_o as_o this_o life_n last_v god_n himself_o mind_v &_o will_v to_o have_v it_o so_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o which_o be_v say_v of_o lazarus_n &_o the_o wicked_a rich_a man_n in_o s._n luke_n thou_o wicked_a man_n remember_v that_o thou_o in_o thy_o life_n time_n receive_v thy_o pleasure_n &_o likewise_o lazarus_n pain_n now_o therefore_o he_o be_v comfort_v &_o thou_o be_v torment_v the_o second_o point_n be_v wherefore_o god_n do_v rather_o afflict_v his_o church_n they_o other_o people_n as_o s._n peter_n say_v 4.17_o 1._o pet._n 4.17_o the_o time_n be_v come_v that_o iugdement_n must_v begin_v at_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o there_o be_v 5._o principal_a reason_n or_o cause_n hereof_o the_o first_o because_o that_o by_o affliction_n god_n declare_v unto_o we_o that_o he_o love_v we_o as_o he_o speak_v thereof_o in_o the_o proverbe_n 12.5.6_o pro._n 3.11.12_o heb._n 12.5.6_o and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n secondary_o because_o it_o please_v god_n by_o this_o mean_n too_o discern_v we_o that_o be_v his_o child_n from_o infidel_n and_o hypocrite_n as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n declare_v the_o same_o in_o the_o twelve_o 11.19_o heb._n 12.8_o 1._o cor._n 11.19_o chapter_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n also_o saint_n paul_n say_v unto_o the_o corinthian_n there_o must_v be_v heresy_n even_o among_o you_o that_o they_o which_o be_v approve_v among_o you_o may_v he_o know_v 1.7_o jam._n 1.2_o 3._o 1._o pet._n 1.7_o and_o saint_n james_n and_o saint_n peter_n do_v for_o this_o very_a cause_n call_v the_o affliction_n of_o the_o faithful_a trial_n of_o their_o faith_n three_o because_o they_o which_o know_v the_o will_n of_o their_o master_n and_o do_v it_o not_o 12.47_o luke_n 12.47_o be_v less_o excusable_a yea_o shall_v be_v beat_v with_o many_o stripe_n four_o because_o it_o serve_v too_o set_v out_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n to_o the_o end_n we_o shall_v not_o think_v that_o god_n wink_v at_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o people_n five_o because_o it_o serve_v also_o to_o give_v example_n of_o instruction_n to_o the_o wicked_a for_o as_o jesus_n christ_n say_v 23.31_o luke_n 23.31_o if_o they_o do_v these_o thing_n to_o a_o green_a tree_n what_o shall_v be_v do_v to_o the_o dry_a and_o saint_n peter_n etc._n 1._o pet._n 4._o 17._o etc._n etc._n if_o judgement_n say_v he_o first_o begin_v at_o we_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o they_o which_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o god_n and_o if_o the_o righteous_a scarce_o be_v save_v where_o shall_v the_o ungodly_a and_o the_o sinner_n appear_v the_o third_o point_n that_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o church_n and_o faithful_a people_n be_v always_o moderate_v &_o keep_v in_o good_a measure_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n himself_o for_o he_o have_v promise_v that_o although_o he_o chasten_v his_o people_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o destroy_v they_o for_o all_o that_o hitherto_o must_v be_v refer_v these_o place_n when_o thou_o be_v in_o tribulation_n 430.31_o deut._n 430.31_o and_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v come_v upon_o thou_o at_o the_o last_o if_o thou_o return_v to_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o be_v obedient_a unto_o his_o voice_n for_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n be_v a_o merciful_a god_n he_o will_v not_o forsake_v thou_o neither_o destroy_v thou_o nor_o forget_v the_o covenant_n of_o thy_o father_n which_o he_o swear_v unto_o they_o 15._o 2._o sam._n 7.14_o 15._o i_o will_v be_v his_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v my_o son_n and_o if_o he_o sin_v i_o will_v chasten_v he_o with_o the_o rod_n of_o man_n and_o with_o the_o plague_n of_o the_o child_n of_o man_n but_o my_o mercy_n shall_v not_o depart_v away_o from_o he_o as_o i_o take_v it_o from_o saul_n who_o i_o have_v put_v away_o before_o thou_o 48.9.10_o isaiah_n 48.9.10_o for_o my_o name_n sake_n will_v i_o defferre_fw-la my_o wrath_n and_o for_o my_o promise_n will_v i_o refrain_v it_o from_o thou_o that_o i_o cut_v thou_o not_o of_o behold_v i_o have_v fine_v thou_o but_o not_o as_o silver_n i_o have_v choose_v thou_o in_o the_o furnace_n of_o affliction_n 11.12.13.17_o jeremiah_n 30_o 11.12.13.17_o i_o be_o with_o thou_o say_v the_o lord_n to_o jacob_n to_o save_v thou_o though_o i_o utter_o destroy_v all_o the_o nation_n where_o i_o have_v scatter_v thou_o yet_o will_v i_o not_o utter_o destroy_v thou_o but_o i_o will_v correct_v thou_o by_o judgement_n and_o not_o utter_o cut_v thou_o of_o 14.21.22_o ezechil_n 14.21.22_o for_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n thy_o bruise_n be_v incurable_a and_o thy_o wound_n be_v dolorous_a there_o be_v none_o to_o judge_v thy_o cause_n or_o to_o lay_v a_o plaster_n there_o be_v no_o medicine_n nor_o help_n for_o thou_o but_o i_o will_v restore_v health_n unto_o thou_o and_o i_o will_v heal_v thou_o of_o thy_o wound_n say_v the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n when_o i_o send_v upon_o jerusalem_n my_o four_o sore_a judgement_n say_v the_o lord_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 6.1.2_o hosea_n 5.15_o hosea_n 6.1.2_o the_o sword_n and_o famine_n and_o the_o noisome_a beast_n and_o pestilence_n to_o destroy_v man_n and_o beast_n out_o of_o it_o yet_o behold_v therein_o shall_v be_v leave_v a_o remnant_n of_o they_o that_o shall_v be_v carry_v away_o both_o son_n and_o daughter_n and_o you_o shall_v be_v comfort_v in_o their_o affliction_n they_o will_v seek_v i_o diligent_o say_v come_v &_o let_v we_o return_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o have_v spoil_v and_o he_o will_v heal_v we_o he_o have_v wound_v we_o and_o he_o will_v bind_v we_o up_o after_o two_o day_n will_v he_o revive_v we_o 10.13_o 1._o corin._n 10.13_o and_o in_o the_o three_o day_n he_o will_v raise_v we_o up_o and_o we_o shall_v live_v in_o his_o sight_n there_o have_v no_o temptation_n take_v you_o but_o such_o as_o appertain_v to_o man_n and_o god_n be_v faithful_a which_o will_v not_o suffer_v you_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o that_o you_o be_v able_a but_o will_v even_o give_v the_o issue_n with_o the_o temptation_n that_o you_o may_v be_v able_a to_o bear_v it_o the_o four_o point_n wherefore_o god_n do_v not_o send_v succour_n &_o aid_v to_o his_o church_n so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v afflict_v certain_o the_o cross_n be_v sometime_o so_o weighty_a and_o heavy_a upon_o our_o shoulder_n that_o it_o seem_v to_o we_o that_o god_n sleep_v or_o else_o that_o he_o have_v
forget_v we_o as_o we_o hear_v the_o complaint_n of_o saint_n touch_v that_o matter_n in_o the_o scripture_n how_o long_o will_v thou_o forget_v i_o o_o lord_n say_v david_n 13.1_o psalm_n 13.1_o how_o long_o will_v thou_o hide_v thy_o face_n from_o i_o and_o again_o up_o why_o sleep_v thou_o o_o lord_n 24_o psalm_n 44.23_o 24_o awake_a he_o not_o far_o of_o for_o ever_o wherefore_o hide_v thou_o thy_o face_n and_o forget_v our_o misery_n &_o our_o affliction_n and_o habacu_fw-la o_o lord_n 1.2.13_o haba_n 1.2.13_o say_v he_o how_o long_o shall_v i_o cry_v &_o thou_o will_v not_o hear_v even_o cry_v out_o unto_o thou_o for_o violence_n and_o thou_o will_v not_o help_v thou_o be_v of_o pure_a eye_n and_o can_v not_o see_v evil_a thou_o can_v not_o behold_v wickedness_n wherefore_o do_v thou_o look_v upon_o the_o transgressor_n and_o hold_v thy_o tongue_n when_o the_o wicked_a devour_v the_o man_n that_o be_v more_o righteous_a than_o he_o but_o god_n sleep_v not_o at_o any_o hand_n even_o as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o one_o of_o the_o psalm_n 121.4_o psalm_n 121.4_o behold_v he_o that_o keep_v israel_n will_v neither_o slumber_v nor_o sleep_n neither_o do_v he_o forget_v we_o as_o he_o himself_o assure_v we_o by_o his_o prophet_n isaiah_n when_o he_o say_v 15_o isaiah_n 49_o 15_o can_v a_o woman_n forget_v her_o child_n or_o will_v she_o not_o pity_v the_o fruit_n of_o her_o womb_n but_o though_o she_o shall_v forget_v yet_o will_v not_o i_o forget_v thou_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o in_o deed_n god_n do_v not_o at_o any_o time_n forget_v his_o mercy_n no_o not_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o wrath_n and_o anger_n 10.13_o haba_n 3.2_o 1._o corin._n 10.13_o neither_o do_v he_o suffer_v we_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o our_o strength_n wherefore_o then_o be_v it_o that_o he_o do_v not_o send_v we_o succour_v and_o aid_v without_o delay_n thereby_o to_o deliver_v we_o from_o oppression_n it_o be_v first_o and_o foremost_a because_o our_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o 59.1.2_o isayah_n 59.1.2_o behold_v say_v the_o prophet_n the_o lord_n hand_n be_v not_o shorten_v that_o it_o can_v save_v neither_o his_o ear_n heavy_a that_o it_o can_v hear_v but_o your_o iniquity_n have_v separate_v between_o you_o and_o your_o god_n and_o your_o sin_n have_v hide_v his_o face_n from_o you_o that_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v second_o because_o that_o serve_v for_o the_o advancement_n of_o god_n his_o glory_n and_o for_o the_o augment_v &_o increase_v of_o our_o faith_n as_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o be_v write_v touch_v the_o sickness_n and_o death_n of_o lazarus_n 11.14.15_o john_n 11.14.15_o the_o brother_n of_o martha_n &_o mary_n this_o sickness_n say_v jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o to_o death_n but_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v thereby_o and_o after_o ward_n lazarus_n be_v dead_a say_v he_o and_o i_o be_o glad_a for_o your_o sake_n that_o i_o be_v not_o there_o that_o you_o may_v believe_v and_o to_o this_o last_o point_n be_v refer_v that_o which_o s._n paul_n say_v we_o receive_v the_o sentence_n of_o death_n in_o ourselves_o 1.9_o 2._o cor._n 1.9_o because_o we_o shall_v not_o trust_v in_o ourselves_o but_o in_o god_n which_o raise_v the_o dead_a the_o five_o point_n that_o affliction_n &_o danger_n increase_v even_o then_o when_o the_o deliverance_n be_v nigh_o example_n hereof_o be_v set_v out_o unto_o we_o in_o the_o scripture_n the_o israelite_n be_v marvellous_o torment_v in_o egypt_n throughout_o exod._n 14._o throughout_o all_o the_o while_n that_o they_o be_v keep_v captive_n &_o prisoner_n there_o but_o they_o never_o have_v so_o great_a a_o occasion_n to_o fear_n neither_o be_v they_o at_o any_o time_n so_o press_v yea_o oppress_a as_o when_o god_n bring_v they_o out_o of_o their_o captivity_n and_o bondage_n to_o make_v they_o pass_v through_o the_o red_a sea_n and_o to_o guide_v they_o in_o the_o wilderness_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o xiiii_o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la etc._n 1._o sam._n 27._o 1._o etc._n etc._n david_n before_o he_o come_v to_o the_o enjoy_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o be_v promise_v he_o by_o god_n be_v constrain_v to_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o country_n and_o to_o seek_v a_o place_n of_o refuge_n and_o comfort_n amongst_o the_o philistine_n his_o enemy_n yea_o in_o the_o court_n of_o king_n achish_n where_o he_o find_v himself_o in_o extreme_a danger_n throughout_o isaiah_n 37._o throughout_o yea_o more_o great_a then_o at_o any_o time_n before_o he_o have_v escape_v then_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n send_v from_o he_o to_o remove_v the_o siege_n of_o zenacherib_n from_o before_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o so_o by_o that_o mean_n to_o deliver_v king_n ezekias_n and_o the_o people_n which_o be_v within_o when_o for_o the_o great_a oppression_n thereof_o they_o be_v hold_v &_o keep_v in_o so_o narrow_o &_o short_a that_o they_o be_v at_o the_o point_n or_o very_o nigh_o to_o see_v the_o city_n render_v &_o deliver_v etc._n mark_v 6.47_o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o assyrian_n pity_n and_o mercy_n jesus_n christ_n do_v very_o well_o behold_v that_o his_o disciple_n be_v in_o great_a danger_n in_o the_o ship_n which_o be_v toss_v to_o &_o fro_o with_o the_o outrage_n or_o violence_n of_o the_o wind_n and_o tempest_n but_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o come_v not_o unto_o they_o to_o succour_v they_o but_o about_o the_o 4._o watch_n of_o the_o night_n wherefore_o let_v we_o not_o loose_v our_o courage_n &_o stomach_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o great_a persecution_n and_o affliction_n which_o can_v come_v for_o when_o all_o the_o mean_n of_o help_n and_o aid_v on_o man_n side_n or_o in_o respect_n of_o they_o do_v fail_v we_o &_o that_o it_o seem_v that_o all_o be_v do_v with_o we_o and_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v altogether_o wear_v out_o consume_v &_o beat_v down_o even_o than_o will_v god_n perform_v his_o own_o work_n he_o alone_o succour_v we_o to_o the_o end_n that_o unto_o he_o alone_o also_o the_o glory_n of_o our_o deliverance_n may_v be_v whole_o and_o absolute_o refer_v the_o sixth_o point_n that_o god_n through_o his_o power_n keep_v and_o defend_v his_o church_n against_o the_o violence_n &_o assault_n of_o tyrant_n and_o persecutor_n and_o deliver_v the_o same_o out_o of_o their_o hand_n when_o time_n be_v therefore_o thereto_o tend_v and_o belong_v these_o promise_n the_o lord_n know_v to_o deliver_v the_o godly_a out_o of_o temptation_n 2.9_o 2_o pet._n 2.9_o &_o to_o reserve_v the_o unjust_a until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v punish_v 12.5_o psal_n 12.5_o for_o the_o oppression_n of_o the_o needy_a and_o for_o the_o sigh_n of_o the_o poor_a i_o will_v up_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o will_v set_v at_o liberty_n he_o who_o the_o wicked_a have_v snare_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n pitch_v round_o about_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o and_o deliver_v they_o 19.20.22_o psal_n 34.7.17_o 19.20.22_o the_o righteous_a cry_n and_o the_o lord_n hear_v they_o &_o deliver_v they_o out_o of_o all_o their_o trouble_n great_a be_v the_o trouble_n of_o the_o righteous_a but_o the_o lord_n deliver_v he_o out_o of_o they_o al._n he_o keep_v all_o his_o bone_n not_o one_o of_o they_o be_v break_v the_o lord_n redeem_v the_o soul_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o none_o that_o trust_v in_o he_o shall_v perish_v 9.14.15_o psalm_n 50.15_o psa_n 9.14.15_o call_v upon_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o day_n of_o trouble_n so_o will_v i_o deliver_v thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v glorify_v i_o and_o again_o because_o he_o have_v love_v i_o therefore_o will_v i_o deliver_v he_o i_o will_v exalt_v he_o because_o he_o have_v know_v my_o name_n he_o shall_v call_v upon_o i_o and_o i_o will_v hear_v he_o i_o will_v be_v with_o he_o in_o trouble_n i_o will_v deliver_v he_o and_o glorify_v he_o 125.2_o psalm_n 125.2_o as_o the_o mountain_n be_v about_o jerusalem_n so_o be_v the_o lord_n about_o his_o people_n from_o hence_o forth_o and_o for_o ever_o 16.18_o mat._n 16.18_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o overcome_v it_o 12.32_o luk._n 12.32_o fear_v not_o little_a flock_n for_o it_o be_v your_o father_n pleasure_n to_o give_v you_o the_o kingdom_n and_o we_o have_v many_o example_n hereof_o in_o the_o scripture_n 5.19_o exod._n 14._o throughout_o dan._n 3._o daniel_n 6._o throughout_o isaiah_n 37_o throughout_o act_n 12.7_o act_n 5.19_o as_o when_o god_n bring_v the_o israelite_n out_o of_o egypt_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o moses_n when_o he_o deliver_v daniel_n out_o of_o the_o lion_n den_n &_o shadrach_n messiach_n &_o abednego_n out_o of_o the_o burn_a flame_n